Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n church_n true_a visible_a 19,269 5 9.3685 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15857 H. Zanchius his confession of Christian religion Which novve at length being 70. yeares of age, he caused to bee published in the name of himselfe & his family. Englished in sense agreeable, and in words as answerable to his ovvne latine copie, as in so graue a mans worke is requisite: for the profite of all the vnlearneder sort, of English christians, that desire to know his iudgement in matters of faith.; De religione Christiana, fides. English Zanchi, Girolamo, 1516-1590. 1599 (1599) STC 26120; ESTC S120607 223,465 477

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

&_o the_o gift_n of_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n the_o end_n be_v our_o glorious_a resurrection_n &_o even_o eternal_a life_n i_o say_v for_o this_o other_o principal_a foundation_n of_o christian_n religion_n what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o plain_o &_o more_o large_o they_o that_o which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n determine_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n by_o melivitanus_n arausicanus_fw-la &_o other_o against_o the_o pelagian_o &_o which_o be_v write_v by_o augustine_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o other_o in_o many_o book_n against_o the_o same_o pelagian_o concern_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n what_o be_v there_o needful_a to_o be_v know_v which_o have_v not_o be_v most_o plentiful_o and_o plain_o set_v down_o by_o augustine_n aswell_o in_o other_o place_n as_o especial_o in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n even_o out_o of_o he_o foundation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n to_o know_v what_o and_o where_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n not_o of_o the_o least_o account_n about_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n also_o if_o a_o man_n will_v content_v himself_o with_o the_o simple_a truth_n what_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n justine_n ireneus_fw-la tertullian_n cyprian_n and_o chief_o augustine_n have_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o leave_v unto_o we_o in_o their_o writing_n one_o say_v like_a as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v flesh_n have_v flesh_n and_o blood_n so_o also_o we_o have_v learn_v that_o the_o food_n hallow_v by_o he_o by_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanks_o give_v be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o same_o incarnate_a jesus_n christ_n even_o according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n without_o any_o change_v of_o itself_o into_o flesh_n but_o only_o by_o a_o hypostatical_a or_o personal_a union_n therefore_o neither_o be_v the_o bread_n make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o any_o transubstantiation_n of_o itself_o into_o the_o body_n but_o only_o by_o a_o union_n and_o that_o not_o a_o physical_a or_o bodily_a or_o hypostatical_a but_o only_o a_o sacramental_a union_n also_o he_o say_v by_o that_o food_n namely_o of_o the_o bless_a bread_n our_o blood_n and_o our_o body_n be_v nourish_v by_o a_o certain_a change_v of_o itself_o namely_o into_o christ_n therefore_o that_o change_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v not_o of_o the_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n nor_o of_o christ_n into_o we_o but_o of_o we_o into_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o engraft_v as_o also_o we_o read_v in_o augustine_n that_o christ_n shall_v say_v speak_v of_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v change_v into_o thou_o but_o thou_o shall_v be_v change_v into_o i_o the_o same_o man_n say_v unto_o this_o the_o food_n of_o the_o eucharist_n none_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v but_o they_o that_o believe_v that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v true_a be_v wash_v with_o the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n unto_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n &_o so_o live_v as_o christ_n have_v teach_v they_o therefore_o no_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n nor_o they_o which_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n not_o they_o which_o live_v in_o such_o apparent_a sin_n and_o wickedness_n that_o they_o give_v no_o notice_n to_o the_o church_n of_o their_o amendment_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o supper_n another_o of_o they_o say_v the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o matter_n a_o earthly_a and_o a_o heavenly_a the_o bread_n though_o it_o be_v sanctify_v yet_o he_o call_v it_o a_o earthly_a matter_n why_o so_o because_o it_o come_v from_o the_o earth_n it_o exi_v on_o earth_n and_o be_v eat_v with_o a_o earthly_a mouth_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n he_o call_v a_o heavenly_a matter_n not_o because_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v out_o of_o heaven_n but_o partly_o because_o it_o be_v take_v into_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o word_n and_o partly_o because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n endue_v with_o heavenly_a quality_n for_o although_o in_o the_o hypostasie_n which_o be_v the_o very_a word_n it_o be_v every_o where_n yet_o in_o the_o own_o proper_a essence_n it_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n and_o not_o on_o earth_n whereupon_o it_o also_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o eat_v either_o by_o earthly_a man_n or_o by_o the_o tooth_n of_o a_o earthly_a body_n but_o only_o of_o those_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v from_o above_o do_v carry_v the_o image_n of_o heavenly_a man_n &_o eat_v it_o in_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n namely_o in_o soul_n &_o spirit_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o very_a body_n also_o of_o the_o faithful_a while_o they_o eat_v only_o a_o earthly_a matter_n they_o also_o participate_v of_o a_o heavenly_a matter_n to_o their_o glorious_a resurrection_n &_o be_v nourish_v by_o it_o as_o the_o same_o author_n in_o that_o place_n very_o learned_o expound_v i_o think_v that_o by_o this_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v out_o of_o the_o creed_n concern_v four_o principal_a part_n of_o christian_n doctrine_n your_o hon._n can_v well_o gather_v such_o be_v your_o piety_n learning_n &_o wisdom_n what_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v concern_v the_o whole_a body_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o those_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o call_v of_o we_o the_o true_o defensed_a city_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n which_o profess_v general_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o special_o the_o catechism_n in_o all_o place_n receive_v do_v so_o reverence_v the_o ancient_a church_n and_o ancient_a father_n have_v therefore_o friendship_n and_o communion_n with_o they_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n that_o neither_o in_o their_o opinion_n nor_o yet_o in_o their_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v easy_o decline_v from_o they_o but_o only_o then_o whenas_o they_o be_v force_v to_o dissent_v both_o by_o manifest_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o by_o testimony_n and_o consequence_n beyond_o all_o doubt_n necessary_a draw_v from_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n this_o sure_o be_v count_v for_o a_o notorious_a fault_n in_o nestorius_n and_o it_o be_v write_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o vile_a heresy_n that_o contemn_v the_o father_n and_o trust_v upon_o his_o own_o wit_n he_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n after_o his_o own_o brain_n what_o speak_v i_o of_o nestorius_n yea_o that_o the_o same_o contempt_n of_o the_o father_n and_o some_o confidence_n of_o their_o own_o wit_n and_o their_o own_o learning_n do_v cause_n diverse_a more_o beside_o otherways_o very_o notable_a man_n to_o fall_v into_o sundry_a heresy_n i_o can_v easy_o show_v out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o counsel_n if_o the_o brevity_n of_o a_o epistle_n will_v suffer_v i_o for_o whence_o i_o pray_v be_v it_o that_o after_o that_o most_o holy_a council_n at_o nice_a so_o many_o heretic_n forth_o with_o arise_v of_o who_o some_o oppugned_a the_o true_a and_o everlasting_a deity_n of_o christ_n other_o his_o true_a and_o perfect_a humanity_n other_o the_o true_a unite_n of_o both_o the_o nature_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n other_o the_o true_a distinction_n of_o their_o nature_n &_o their_o propriety_n hence_o sure_o that_o contemn_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o their_o exposition_n upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o trust_v confident_o to_o their_o own_o wit_n and_o puff_v up_o with_o humane_a knowledge_n and_o eloquence_n they_o dare_v every_o one_o to_o expound_v yea_o indeed_o to_o deprave_v &_o wrest_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n hereunto_o pertain_v that_o which_o vigilius_n leave_v write_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n against_o eutyches_n but_o they_o blow_v forth_o say_v he_o these_o smoke_n of_o vain_a accusation_n chief_o because_o they_o be_v even_o sick_a of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o ignorance_n or_o disease_n of_o contention_n and_o whilst_o they_o be_v gog_v on_o with_o a_o fond_a conceit_n of_o mind_n they_o despise_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n deliver_v of_o old_a by_o the_o father_n only_o for_o this_o cause_n to_o bring_v in_o their_o own_o conceit_a opinion_n of_o innovation_n into_o the_o church_n thus_o say_v vigilius_n this_o that_o i_o say_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o disposition_n imitation_n and_o word_n of_o the_o sound_a father_n on_o the_o other_o side_n who_o expound_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_n say_v
according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o father_n of_o elder_a time_n have_v ever_o no_o less_o prosperous_o then_o faithful_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_n religion_n and_o preserve_v the_o same_o sound_o confirm_v in_o the_o church_n to_o which_o purpose_n tend_v the_o word_n which_o they_o use_v in_o their_o own_o determination_n we_o therefore_o every_o where_o follow_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o old_a father_n and_o their_o rule_n do_v also_o determine_v the_o same_o etc._n etc._n nothing_o then_o be_v more_o safe_a then_o that_o every_o man_n keep_v himself_o within_o these_o church_n as_o in_o city_n well_o fence_a wherein_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o according_a to_o the_o receive_a exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o consequent_o which_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_n man_n which_o desire_v to_o keep_v himself_o and_o his_o family_n safe_a from_o his_o enemy_n unto_o everlasting_a life_n namely_o that_o he_o must_v retire_v himself_o into_o the_o defensed_a city_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o there_o constant_o abide_v until_o that_o at_o the_o last_o all_o enemy_n be_v put_v to_o flight_n by_o the_o glorious_a come_n of_o our_o king_n we_o may_v be_v safe_a and_o free_a in_o all_o place_n but_o without_o provision_n of_o vital_n who_o can_v long_o maintain_v his_o life_n our_o victual_n or_o sustenance_n be_v the_o daily_a hear_n read_v and_o meditation_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n at_o appoint_a time_n for_o by_o both_o these_o we_o be_v nourish_v streng_v then_v and_o we_o live_v &_o that_o through_o christ_n our_o life_n who_o they_o offer_v and_o give_v unto_o us._n he_o which_o eat_v this_o bread_n take_v either_o by_o the_o word_n or_o by_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v never_o die_v in_o the_o act_n christ_n disciple_n continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n that_o be_v in_o their_o common_a love-feaste_n in_o which_o the_o lord_n supper_n use_v to_o be_v celebrate_v and_o such_o heavenly_a victual_n be_v seldom_o want_v in_o well_o defense_v city_n yet_o except_o thou_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n preserve_v thy_o life_n what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v thou_o to_o be_v in_o a_o defensed_a city_n thou_o must_v therefore_o frequent_v sermon_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o employ_v thyself_o in_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n 3_o it_o be_v very_o needful_a also_o that_o continual_a prayer_n both_o public_a and_o private_a be_v make_v unto_o god_n wherein_o we_o must_v ask_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v command_v to_o be_v ask_v of_o his_o father_n namely_o all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v aswell_o to_o his_o glory_n as_o to_o our_o own_o and_o our_o neighbour_n salvation_n and_o that_o he_o will_v defend_v we_o from_o all_o kind_n of_o enemy_n and_o keep_v we_o safe_a in_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o tribulation_n shall_v thou_o call_v upon_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o be_v not_o then_o chief_o the_o day_n of_o affliction_n when_o heresy_n do_v overspread_v and_o tyrant_n persecute_v the_o truth_n then_o therefore_o chief_o be_v god_n to_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o that_o by_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v pray_v you_o without_o cease_v and_o christ_n jesus_n you_o must_v pray_v always_o and_o not_o be_v weary_a and_o he_o that_o thus_o pray_v and_o pray_v by_o faith_n how_o shall_v he_o not_o obtain_v wherefore_o god_n add_v by_o his_o prophet_n and_o i_o will_v he_o be_v thou_o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v say_v also_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n seek_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v unto_o you_o 4_o but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v there_o live_v happy_o and_o the_o city_n be_v preserve_v where_o the_o citizen_n among_o themselves_o keep_v no_o friendship_n therefore_o brotherly_a love_n peace_n and_o concord_n must_v be_v keep_v than_o which_o nothing_o be_v sweet_a nothing_o more_o please_v to_o god_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o profitable_a for_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v no_o thing_n by_o which_o church_n and_o all_o society_n be_v soon_o bring_v to_o ruin_v then_o envy_n than_o hatred_n then_o grudge_n than_o enmity_n than_o dissension_n then_o domestical_a fallinge_n out_o doubtless_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n where_o charity_n have_v not_o place_n since_o true_a faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v work_v by_o charity_n and_o brotherly_a love_n have_v ever_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o true_a christian_n christ_n himself_o say_v by_o this_o shall_v man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v love_v one_o with_o another_o this_o do_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o where_o luke_n say_v of_o the_o faithful_a they_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o one_o heart_n namely_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o tertullian_n report_v in_o apolog._n cap._n 39_o that_o the_o roman_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v of_o the_o christian_n mark_v how_o they_o love_v one_o another_o for_o by_o this_o brotherly_a love_n as_o by_o the_o true_a badge_n of_o christian_n religion_n they_o will_v have_v christian_n discern_v from_o they_o that_o be_v no_o christian_n 5_o further_n more_o how_o necessary_a the_o care_n of_o health_n be_v to_o all_o the_o citizen_n live_v in_o such_o a_o city_n to_o defend_v they_o and_o they_o and_o so_o the_o whole_a city_n against_o the_o enemy_n be_v say_v a_o little_a before_o by_o this_o spiritual_a health_n i_o mean_v a_o good_a conscience_n which_o as_o it_o spring_v from_o faith_n so_o also_o it_o preserve_v faith_n that_o it_o can_v quite_o decay_v even_o as_o the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n bring_v forth_o health_n and_o health_n preserve_v the_o body_n in_o life_n every_o one_o therefore_o must_v be_v careful_a that_o he_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n but_o by_o what_o mean_n be_v it_o keep_v 1._o after_o a_o due_a sorrow_n by_o a_o sure_a trust_n of_o the_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o we_o have_v commit_v through_o christ_n next_o by_o a_o true_a amendment_n of_o life_n that_o be_v a_o earnest_a study_n of_o avoid_v sin_n afterward_o and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n last_o by_o a_o firm_a purpose_n if_o by_o infirmity_n we_o do_v fall_v to_o rise_v again_o and_o to_o fly_v unto_o christ_n for_o pardon_n by_o this_o mean_n shall_v we_o always_o hold_v fast_o a_o good_a conscience_n he_o that_o in_o this_o sort_n constant_o look_v unto_o his_o health_n let_v he_o assure_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v never_o suffer_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v die_v at_o all_o that_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v ever_o err_v and_o go_v astray_o unto_o his_o last_o end_n in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o his_o salvation_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o timothy_n keep_v faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o while_o some_o have_v cast_v aside_o they_o have_v make_v shipwreck_n concern_v faith_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n they_o therefore_o which_o keep_v fast_o a_o good_a conscience_n shall_v never_o make_v a_o deadly_a shipwreck_n of_o the_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n see_v god_n by_o his_o grace_n endu_v they_o as_o with_o the_o treasure_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n so_o also_o with_o a_o perseverance_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o with_o a_o heavenly_a gift_n of_o doctrine_n the_o safe_a thing_n therefore_o both_o at_o all_o time_n and_o especial_o in_o this_o diversity_n of_o religion_n be_v by_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n where_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v and_o the_o assure_a foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n be_v retain_v to_o employ_v ourselves_o in_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n to_o call_v upon_o god_n to_o have_v friendship_n with_o our_o brethren_n and_o to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n to_o ourselves_o 6_o but_o unto_o all_o these_o thing_n how_o necessary_a watchfulness_n be_v who_o unless_o he_o be_v utter_o unskilful_a in_o all_o thing_n know_v not_o where_o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o be_v fear_v as_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v also_o no_o need_n of_o watchfulness_n but_o they_o may_v and_o they_o ought_v to_o live_v in_o great_a security_n but_o where_o there_o want_v no_o thief_n robber_n intrapper_n flatterer_n cousener_n traitor_n enemy_n and_o where_o all_o thing_n be_v full_a of_o treachery_n there_o how_o pernicious_a and_o dangerous_a security_n and_o retchlesnesse_n be_v who_o be_v he_o that_o know_v not_o
word_n of_o the_o insutution_n be_v not_o so_o rehearse_v that_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v and_o understand_v whereby_o faith_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o there_o we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o ttue_n sacrament_n and_o therefore_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o sign_n without_o the_o lawful_a use_n be_v not_o sacrament_n but_o only_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o nothing_o else_o for_o the_o sign_n be_v translate_v only_o by_o the_o word_n from_o their_o common_a use_n to_o the_o holy_a use_n that_o which_o many_o call_v to_o be_v consecrate_v &_o hallow_v and_o thereby_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n even_o as_o augustine_n say_v the_o word_n come_v to_o the_o element_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v it_o come_v indeed_o that_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v and_o believe_v vi_o that_o sacrament_n be_v not_o simple_a mark_n or_o bare_a sign_n therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o these_o sacramental_a sign_n be_v not_o simple_a mark_n which_o only_o do_v sever_v we_o from_o other_o people_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o true_a church_n or_o mere_a token_n unto_o we_o of_o our_o christian_n society_n or_o whereby_o we_o shall_v profess_v our_o faith_n open_o and_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o our_o redemption_n but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o instrument_n by_o which_o while_o the_o action_n &_o benefit_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v unto_o we_o they_o be_v call_v to_o our_o remembrance_n his_o promise_n be_v seal_v and_o our_o faith_n stir_v up_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o do_v ingraft_v we_o to_o christ_n &_o do_v keep_v we_o be_v ingraft_v and_o make_v we_o daily_o to_o grow_v up_o more_o and_o more_o into_o one_o with_o he_o &_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o great_a faith_n towards_o god_n and_o earnest_a love_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n and_o a_o mortification_n of_o ourselves_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o life_n even_o like_a so_o far_o as_o may_v be_v to_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n in_o spiritual_a joy_n and_o gladness_n till_o the_o time_n when_o we_o shall_v live_v with_o he_o in_o heaven_n most_o holy_o and_o bless_o for_o ever_o vii_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a conenant_n of_o what_o sort_n we_o also_o confess_v with_o augustine_n 9_o de_fw-fr doct_n chr_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 9_o that_o the_o sacrament_n deliver_v by_o christ_n be_v in_o number_n few_o easy_a to_o be_v do_v and_o most_o worthy_a to_o be_v understand_v few_o in_o number_n because_o they_o be_v only_o two_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n easy_a to_o be_v do_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o either_o in_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o may_v not_o easy_o be_v perform_v &_o receive_v nothing_o troublesome_a nothing_o unpleasant_a or_o strange_a unto_o a_o man_n last_o most_o worthy_a to_o be_v understand_v because_o although_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v be_v of_o no_o value_n yet_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v which_o be_v set_v down_o to_o be_v think_v on_o consider_v and_o understand_v in_o the_o mind_n be_v most_o reverend_a heavenly_a divine_a &_o pertain_v to_o eternal_a salvation_n viii_o to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v need_n of_o understanding_n and_o faith_n and_o thereby_o also_o we_o know_v that_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o worthy_a receive_n of_o they_o do_v require_v a_o action_n and_o attention_n of_o the_o mind_n &_o a_o faith_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o understand_v what_o be_v signify_v and_o offer_v to_o we_o by_o they_o and_o apprehend_v it_o with_o a_o mind_n settle_v in_o faith_n even_o as_o christ_n teach_v 11.24_o luc._n 22.19_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o where_o he_o say_v of_o his_o supper_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o the_o apostle_n weigh_v and_o consider_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v large_o expound_v they_o to_o which_o purpose_n be_v also_o that_o lift_v up_o your_o heart_n for_o there_o be_v set_v before_o we_o matter_n most_o reverend_a heavenly_a and_o divine_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o receive_v by_o faith_n ix_o that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v serious_o offer_v to_o all_o man_n though_o all_o do_v not_o true_o receive_v the_o same_o but_o only_o the_o choose_a faithful_a and_o although_o all_o man_n come_v not_o to_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o faith_n and_o true_a understanding_n yet_o as_o the_o sign_n be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o profess_v christ_n so_o also_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n be_v serious_o offer_v unto_o all_o by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o nothing_o be_v diminish_v of_o the_o substance_n or_o soundness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o unbelief_n of_o they_o that_o receive_v the_o sign_n only_o for_o it_o depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n x._o while_n the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v powerful_a in_o the_o faithful_a &_o therefore_o they_o not_o only_o receive_v the_o sign_n but_o also_o participate_v in_o the_o thing_n signify_v but_o albeit_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o powerful_a in_o all_o man_n on_o who_o the_o sacrament_n be_v bestow_v as_o it_o be_v neither_o to_o all_o unto_o who_o the_o word_n be_v preach_v and_o that_o by_o their_o own_o fault_n because_o they_o have_v not_o understand_v &_o faith_n yet_o we_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o faithful_a elect_a of_o god_n he_o be_v powerful_a in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o faith_n by_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o confirm_v more_o and_o more_o in_o the_o same_o by_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n into_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v to_o join_v and_o grow_v together_o with_o he_o therein_o and_o therefore_o we_o confess_v that_o these_o man_n in_o baptism_n be_v true_o wash_v and_o purge_v from_o sin_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o eat_v of_o christ_n true_a flesh_n and_o drink_n of_o his_o true_a blood_n xi_o that_o christ_n be_v both_o author_n and_o true_a disposer_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o we_o acknowledge_v as_o one_o author_n so_o one_o true_a disposer_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o give_v the_o outward_a sign_n by_o man_n his_o minister_n but_o he_o himself_o proper_o and_o true_o impart_v unto_o they_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n effectual_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n like_v as_o john_n the_o baptist_n say_v i_o baptize_v with_o water_n but_o christ_n will_v baptize_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o institute_v new_a sacrament_n so_o also_o can_v no_o man_n boast_v that_o he_o true_o and_o proper_o cleanse_v conscience_n of_o sin_n or_o that_o he_o feed_v man_n with_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o as_o they_o say_v ministerial_o or_o as_o a_o minister_n xii_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o pollute_v to_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o minister_n now_o if_o christ_n alone_o be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a author_n of_o sacrament_n but_o the_o disposer_n also_o we_o easy_o gather_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o pollute_v to_o other_o that_o be_v faithful_a by_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o labour_n he_o use_v 1.15_o tit._n 1.15_o but_o that_o notwithstanding_o they_o may_v receive_v they_o worthy_o and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o offer_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o to_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o 3.17_o eph._n 3.17_o and_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o riches_n dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a xiii_o that_o grace_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o sacrament_n by_o these_o foundation_n be_v we_o confirm_v in_o the_o opinion_n receive_v among_o all_o godly_a man_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o sacrament_n so_o that_o who_o so_o receive_v they_o must_v needs_o receive_v also_o grace_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v and_o offer_v by_o the_o sacrament_n although_o he_o want_v faith_n as_o though_o a_o man_n can_v obtain_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o work_n wrought_v as_o they_o call_v it_o 8.13_o mar._n 16.16_o act._n 8.13_o for_o christ_n say_v not_o simple_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v baptize_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o first_o add_v whosoever_o believe_v and_o simon_n magus_n he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n but_o he_o obtain_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o baptism_n when_o as_o yet_o as_o peter_n witness_v he_o be_v wrap_v in_o the_o most_o bitter_a gall_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n and_o devilish_a
holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o jesus_n christ_n our_o advocate_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o and_o none_o other_o 50.16_o psa_fw-la 50.16_o for_o of_o call_v upon_o god_n alone_o there_o be_v express_v commandment_n since_o he_o alone_o be_v to_o be_v serve_v and_o worship_v and_o of_o christ_n be_v our_o mediator_n and_o advocate_n we_o lack_v not_o testimony_n and_o example_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n 2.18_o deu._n 10.12_o mat._n 4.10_o col._n 2.18_o &_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o as_o it_o be_v express_o forbid_v we_o to_o serve_v or_o worship_v any_o mere_a creature_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v either_o in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n so_o also_o we_o be_v forbid_v to_o pray_v unto_o they_o and_o if_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n 1.6_o joh._n 1.6_o much_o more_o than_o be_v that_o which_o be_v admit_v against_o the_o clear_a word_n of_o god_n since_o the_o very_a heathen_a themselves_o think_v none_o be_v to_o be_v call_v upon_o except_o he_o be_v think_v a_o god_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o pray_v unto_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n in_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v but_o that_o god_n alone_o and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n even_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v daily_o rehearse_v do_v manifest_o teach_v ii_o a_o christian_n man_n may_v swear_v lawful_o we_o also_o believe_v that_o a_o christian_n man_n may_v swear_v 4.2_o jer._n 4.2_o lawful_o namely_o in_o truth_n as_o the_o prophet_n teach_v in_o judgement_n in_o righteousness_n so_o that_o his_o oath_n be_v neither_o false_a nor_o rash_a nor_o unjust_a neither_o be_v it_o condemn_v that_o one_o shall_v take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o if_o he_o take_v it_o in_o vain_a and_o for_o a_o untruth_n and_o among_o all_o nation_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n a_o oath_n have_v be_v use_v when_o it_o make_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n yea_o it_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o example_n of_o god_n himself_o of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n wherefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o matthew_n 5.12_o mat._n 5.35_o ja._n 5.12_o or_o of_o james_n in_o his_o epistle_n can_v be_v repugnant_a unto_o this_o for_o they_o speak_v against_o the_o abuse_n of_o oath_n and_o mean_v to_o declare_v a_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o commandment_n concern_v a_o oathi_o iii_o we_o must_v not_o swear_v but_o by_o god_n we_o believe_v when_o a_o oath_n be_v to_o be_v take_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o call_v upon_o or_o take_v to_o witness_v of_o our_o conscience_n no_o other_o beside_o god_n and_o therefore_o may_v not_o swear_v but_o by_o he_o for_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o searcher_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o he_o alone_o must_v have_v his_o honour_n and_o worship_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o witness_n and_o revenger_n against_o our_o soul_n if_o we_o perform_v not_o that_o which_o by_o our_o oath_n we_o promise_v iu_o oath_n which_o be_v just_a and_o lawful_o take_v must_v be_v keep_v hereupon_o we_o confess_v that_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n who_o name_n in_o our_o oath_n be_v as_o it_o be_v lay_v to_o pledge_n all_o oath_n lawful_o take_v aught_o to_o be_v observe_v as_o also_o the_o law_n command_v neither_o be_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o be_v take_v in_o vain_a or_o in_o a_o untruth_n v._o oath_n upon_o ungodly_a and_o unjust_a matter_n such_o as_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v or_o be_v make_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v again_o since_o we_o ought_v to_o promise_v nothing_o that_o be_v unjust_a or_o ungodly_a namely_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n much_o less_o do_v we_o judge_v it_o lawful_a to_o be_v confirm_v by_o oath_n or_o by_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v take_v we_o affirm_v that_o such_o a_o oath_n unlawful_a in_o itself_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v because_o in_o perform_v such_o a_o oath_n the_o sin_n be_v double_v 14.7_o mat._n 14.7_o as_o we_o read_v of_o herode_fw-la in_o the_o evangelist_n vi_o oath_n which_o can_v be_v keep_v without_o breach_n of_o god_n law_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v though_o some_o such_o oath_n be_v in_o themselves_o not_o unjust_a this_o also_o we_o add_v that_o all_o such_o oath_n as_o can_v be_v keep_v without_o breach_n of_o god_n commandment_n 4_o c._n 22._o q._n 4_o though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o not_o unjust_a yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o therefore_o for_o example_n sake_n they_o which_o by_o oath_n promise_v perpetual_a single_a life_n which_o afterward_o they_o can_v keep_v without_o manifest_a breach_n of_o god_n law_n we_o judge_v that_o such_o aught_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o keep_v their_o oath_n vii_o error_n we_o disallow_v therefore_o those_o which_o pray_v unto_o idol_n dead_a man_n thing_n without_o life_n or_o do_v worship_n they_o we_o disallow_v also_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o simple_o condemn_v all_o oath_n and_o affirm_v that_o no_o manner_n of_o oath_n be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n as_o also_o those_o which_o call_v to_o witness_v to_o their_o soul_n other_o beside_o god_n last_o those_o which_o hold_v that_o their_o oath_n which_o in_o themselves_o be_v ungodlie_a and_o can_v without_o great_a offence_n be_v perform_v yet_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v full_o keep_v and_o observe_v chap._n xxiii_o of_o christ_n church_n in_o general_n sigh_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o body_n do_v consist_v of_o those_o which_o be_v couple_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o member_n to_o their_o head_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o gospel_n and_o sacrament_n with_o which_o as_o with_o instrument_n man_n be_v knit_v unto_o christ_n be_v not_o administer_v but_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o all_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n with_o hope_n love_n repentance_n and_o care_v to_o do_v good_a work_n do_v pertain_v unto_o the_o church_n therefore_o we_o think_v it_o a_o thing_n worth_a the_o labour_n to_o declare_v what_o our_o faith_n be_v concern_v the_o church_n the_o rather_o because_o about_o this_o article_n chief_o there_o be_v so_o great_a controversy_n and_o first_o of_o all_o of_o christ_n church_n in_o general_a so_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n itself_o do_v we_o make_v confession_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o purpose_n afterward_o to_o speak_v several_o of_o the_o militant_a church_n and_o the_o thing_n thereunto_o pertain_v i._o the_o article_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n ii_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o description_n thereof_o by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n church_n we_o understand_v a_o certain_a number_n and_o company_n well_o know_v to_o god_n both_o of_o angel_n and_o man_n not_o only_o choose_v and_o predestinate_v to_o have_v a_o perpetual_a communion_n with_o christ_n and_o among_o themselves_o and_o to_o serve_v the_o true_a god_n according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o commandment_n and_o to_o love_v among_o themselves_o mutual_o with_o a_o perpetual_a and_o sincere_a love_n but_o also_o of_o those_o which_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v be_v effectual_o and_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n call_v out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o other_o and_o join_v to_o their_o head_n christ_n and_o so_o true_o make_v saint_n which_o number_n be_v begin_v from_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o gather_v and_o continue_v in_o a_o perpetual_a line_n &_o band_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o be_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o to_o all_o eternity_n and_o partly_o already_o triumph_v in_o heaven_n with_o christ_n and_o partly_o yet_o on_o earth_n war_a with_o many_o enemy_n for_o christ_n preach_v and_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n minister_a and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o take_v care_n that_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v keep_v aswell_o public_o as_o private_o iii_o the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n consist_v of_o many_o for_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o company_n consist_v of_o many_o as_o a_o body_n compact_v of_o many_o member_n call_v the_o same_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n distinguish_v into_o many_o member_n and_o also_o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n 11.10_o eph._n 1.23_o joh._n 10.3_o heb._n 11.10_o and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o acitie_n consist_v of_o many_o
there_o straight_o way_n in_o the_o same_o field_n do_v the_o enemy_n satan_n sow_v cockle_n upon_o it_o and_o sure_o never_o in_o any_o place_n or_o soon_o be_v hear_v the_o simons_n menander_n ebions_n cerinthian_n valentinian_o and_o such_o plague_n they_o in_o the_o church_n and_o after_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o can_v the_o church_n of_o this_o present_a world_n be_v true_o call_v the_o militant_a church_n unless_o it_o have_v both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o with_o who_o it_o shall_v continual_o fight_v x._o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v nor_o schism_n to_o be_v make_v for_o every_o difference_n that_o arise_v in_o doctrine_n or_o ceremony_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v allow_v it_o that_o any_o shall_v make_v a_o separation_n from_o his_o church_n and_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o violate_v brotherly_a love_n much_o less_o that_o one_o church_n shall_v condemn_v another_o for_o every_o difference_n in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o ceremony_n where_o the_o foundation_n be_v still_o hold_v so_o that_o good_a reason_n be_v it_o that_o victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n intend_v once_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n because_o they_o diffr_v from_o he_o in_o certain_a rite_n be_v reprehend_v of_o ireneus_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o lion_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n that_o for_o the_o stubble_n and_o hay_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n there_o shall_v be_v division_n make_v in_o the_o church_n or_o the_o church_n condemn_v 5.27_o cant._n 1.5_o &_o 2.10_o eph._n 5.27_o since_o the_o church_n do_v not_o straight_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n and_o as_o yet_o be_v holy_a and_o the_o beautiful_a bride_n of_o christ_n though_o it_o be_v darken_v and_o have_v yet_o some_o wrinkle_n and_o scar_n in_o a_o word_n though_o the_o error_n and_o defect_n of_o it_o be_v never_o to_o be_v dissemble_v yet_o in_o what_o congregation_n soever_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v and_o no_o manifest_a idolatry_n allow_v of_o we_o judge_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o embrace_v peace_n and_o communion_n with_o they_o as_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n so_o great_a be_v the_o account_n of_o the_o union_n of_o church_n xi_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o be_v labour_v for_o sith_o therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v one_o and_o catholic_a consist_v of_o many_o and_o particular_a church_n as_o of_o the_o part_n and_o be_v yet_o militant_a on_o the_o earth_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a nor_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o if_o a_o agreement_n in_o the_o lord_n aught_o to_o be_v observe_v with_o every_o particular_a one_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o labour_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n xii_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o name_n of_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n we_o mean_v a_o conjunction_n of_o all_o elect_a &_o regenerate_a people_n whersoever_o they_o be_v on_o earth_n make_v with_o their_o head_n christ_n into_o one_o body_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o call_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n for_o the_o apostle_n also_o describe_v this_o unity_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n 2_o eph._n 1.22_o 1._o cor._n 12.12_o col._n 1.18_o eph._n 4.12_o eph._n 2.15_o rom._n 8.11_o tom._n 7._o de_fw-la uni_fw-la eccl._n c._n 2_o consist_v of_o many_o member_n who_o head_n be_v christ_n repair_v quicken_a work_a &_o preserve_v all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n into_o one_o new_a man_n the_o unity_n therefore_o of_o the_o body_n and_o all_o the_o member_n with_o the_o head_n and_o among_o themselves_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o augustine_n determine_v against_o the_o donatist_n xiii_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n whole_o stand_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o love_n to_o our_o brethren_n but_o because_o to_o the_o preserve_n and_o nourish_v of_o this_o unity_n god_n use_v aswell_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o sacrament_n in_o our_o heart_n as_o also_o our_o charity_n and_o the_o duty_n thereof_o towards_o our_o neighbour_n nay_o because_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_a communion_n of_o saint_n and_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n be_v manifest_a and_o apparent_a therefore_o in_o sum_n we_o confess_v that_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n &_o band_n of_o brotherly_a love_n that_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v all_o of_o we_o in_o true_a faith_n embrace_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n leave_v we_o in_o writing_n and_o public_o profess_v the_o very_a same_o retain_v the_o same_o sacrament_n sincere_a and_o only_a which_o christ_n himself_o institute_v not_o neglect_v the_o discipline_n appoint_v and_o command_v by_o christ_n wherein_o brotherly_a love_n be_v exercise_v and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o brother_n that_o fall_v seek_v for_o &_o last_o that_o we_o shall_v love_v one_o another_o mutual_o &_o practice_v the_o duty_n of_o charity_n fourteen_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n for_o look_v by_o what_o thing_n diverse_a people_n be_v gather_v into_o one_o body_n by_o the_o same_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o be_v unite_v they_o be_v preserve_v and_o knit_v fast_o and_o fast_o together_o sith_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v not_o gather_v nor_o preserve_v proper_o by_o ceremony_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o by_o the_o word_n by_o faith_n by_o love_n and_o by_o keep_v god_n commandment_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o by_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v the_o unity_n thereof_o keep_v and_o cherish_v since_o the_o apostle_n also_o to_o the_o ephesian_n handle_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n teach_v they_o etc._n eph._n 4.2_o etc._n etc._n that_o it_o consist_v upon_o those_o very_a thing_n never_o make_v mention_n of_o any_o ceremony_n xv._o that_o a_o unity_n in_o the_o same_o ceremony_n though_o it_o be_v not_o always_o and_o every_o where_o expedient_a yet_o where_o it_o be_v settle_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v by_o the_o way_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o unity_n also_o in_o these_o very_a ceremony_n and_o rite_n of_o each_o church_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o in_o conscience_n may_v be_v aught_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o observe_v for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v stand_v such_o as_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o word_n as_o be_v many_o external_a rite_n and_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n in_o the_o first_o we_o believe_v a_o unity_n to_o be_v every_o where_o and_o always_o most_o necessary_a in_o the_o other_o though_o it_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o necessary_a yet_o it_o may_v be_v profitable_a for_o the_o diversity_n of_o place_n and_o in_o a_o diverse_a respect_n of_o time_n to_o have_v diverse_a rite_n yet_o where_o any_o certain_a thing_n concern_v these_o matter_n be_v appoint_v and_o receive_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n there_o we_o judge_v that_o all_o aught_o to_o keep_v a_o unity_n also_o in_o such_o manner_n of_o rite_n and_o not_o to_o trouble_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n rule_v all_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o order_n and_o comely_a in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o edification_n 14.40_o 1._o cor._n 14.40_o about_o which_o matter_n we_o also_o wonderful_o well_o allow_v and_o embrace_v the_o two_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n write_v to_o januarius_n 119_o ep._n 118_o &_o 119_o xvi_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n sith_o therefore_o the_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v two_o fold_n one_o essential_a &_o therefore_o of_o itself_o every_o where_o and_o always_o neeessarie_a and_o consequent_o proper_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o other_o accidental_a and_o alterable_a by_o reason_n of_o place_n and_o time_n and_o therefore_o proper_a to_o peculiar_a church_n we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o make_v separation_n from_o the_o former_a at_o any_o time_n or_o for_o any_o occasion_n whieh_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o fall_v from_o christ_n and_o from_o god_n and_o to_o renounce_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o disjoin_v himself_o from_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o very_a damnable_a apostasy_n but_o to_o forsake_v the_o latter_a for_o to_o return_v to_o the_o former_a and_o to_o preserve_v the_o same_o we_o be_v persuade_v it_o be_v not_o only_o lawful_a but_o very_o necessary_a unto_o all_o man_n and_o that_o much_o more_o if_o also_o those_o
rite_n and_o ceremony_n wherein_o the_o unity_n be_v be_v pollute_v with_o diverse_a superstition_n yea_o and_o especial_o if_o also_o the_o sacrament_n institute_v of_o christ_n be_v corrupt_v and_o whole_o disorder_v so_o that_o a_o good_a conscience_n can_v not_o be_v partaker_n of_o they_o but_o what_o if_o the_o heavenly_a truth_n also_o be_v banish_v from_o they_o and_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o preach_v and_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n what_o also_o if_o thou_o can_v not_o there_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v silent_a but_o shall_v be_v constrain_v either_o to_o deny_v god_n truth_n and_o to_o subscribe_v to_o devilish_a untrueth_n or_o else_o to_o spill_v thy_o life_n and_o blood_n xvii_o he_o which_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o thereby_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o as_o much_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v accuse_v of_o apostasy_n or_o a_o backslide_n from_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v say_v to_o have_v break_v the_o unity_n thereof_o because_o we_o will_v no_o long_o communicate_v with_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o ungodly_a superstition_n &_o idolatrous_a service_n but_o choose_v rather_o to_o follow_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n service_n and_o discipline_n renew_v through_o god_n benefit_n by_o the_o true_a servant_n of_o christ_n we_o protest_v before_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n that_o they_o do_v a_o exceed_a injury_n not_o only_o to_o we_o but_o also_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n sith_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v do_v no_o otherwise_o nor_o do_v than_o we_o be_v command_v to_o do_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n yea_o and_o counsel_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o xviii_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v especial_o forbid_v 9_o 1._o cor._n 5.11_o 2._o cor._n 6.14_o tit._n 3.10_o rom._n 16.17_o ca._n 24_o q._n 1_o c._n 24_o &_o 26_o &_o q._n 3._o c._n 9_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v any_o fellowship_n with_o idolater_n and_o obstinate_a apostate_n and_o heretic_n in_o their_o idolatry_n and_o heresy_n nor_o otherwise_o do_v the_o father_n teach_v as_o they_o be_v allege_v for_o witness_n even_o in_o the_o canon_n then_o that_o not_o only_o if_o there_o be_v a_o man_n but_o also_o if_o there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o renounce_v the_o faith_n 29._o c._n 24._o q._n 1._o c._n 29._o &_o hold_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o in_o which_o christ_n doctrine_n abide_v not_o it_o be_v to_o be_v forsake_v neither_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n be_v the_o old_a church_n of_o rome_n so_o celebrate_v of_o the_o father_n that_o which_o then_o flourish_v &_o be_v holy_a and_o call_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o it_o constant_o retain_v the_o doctrine_n receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o most_o part_n drip_v away_o but_o now_o what_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o be_v and_o what_o service_n and_o how_o far_o it_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n in_o many_o thing_n it_o be_v too_o too_o well_o know_v we_o therefore_o moreover_o protest_v that_o we_o have_v make_v no_o other_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v but_o as_o we_o be_v constrain_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o as_o we_o must_v needs_o obey_v god_n so_o command_v we_o and_o therefore_o lest_o we_o shall_v still_o abide_v in_o a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a church_n we_o have_v judge_v it_o our_o part_n and_o duty_n to_o return_v at_o length_n to_o the_o same_o again_o and_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o idolatry_n of_o this_o filthy_a pollute_a romish_a company_n xix_o we_o be_v not_o simple_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o some_o respect_n for_o we_o have_v not_o simple_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n forsake_v the_o ehurch_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o it_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o even_o from_o itself_o and_o from_o the_o old_a and_o sound_a church_n nether_a be_v we_o go_v with_o any_o other_o meaning_n but_o that_o if_o it_o will_v return_v amend_v and_o reform_v to_o the_o ancient_a state_n we_o will_v also_o return_v unto_o it_o and_o have_v communion_n with_o it_o and_o in_o their_o own_o congregation_n which_o that_o it_o may_v one_o day_n come_v to_o pass_v we_o beseech_v the_o lord_n jesus_n with_o our_o whole_a heart_n for_o what_o be_v more_o to_o be_v wish_v of_o every_o good_a man_n they_o that_o where_o we_o be_v by_o our_o baptism_n bear_v a_o new_a there_o we_o may_v live_v even_o to_o our_o life_n end_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n i_o hier._n zanchius_n with_o my_o whole_a family_n pronounce_v this_o to_o be_v witness_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n xx._n the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o err_v but_o every_o particular_a church_n may_v we_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o have_v before_o describe_v it_o be_v so_o govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o never_o suffer_v the_o same_o whole_o &_o all_o of_o it_o to_o err_v because_o it_o ever_o preserve_v in_o some_o godly_a man_n the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o retain_v the_o same_o pure_a and_o sound_o by_o their_o ministry_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o deliver_v it_o to_o posterity_n to_o which_o purpose_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o tend_v which_o paul_n say_v 3.15_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n because_o without_o the_o church_n be_v no_o truth_n but_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v always_o reserve_v since_o there_o be_v ever_o more_o some_o congregation_n great_a or_o small_a wherein_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n do_v sound_a but_o of_o every_o particular_a church_n wherein_o there_o be_v ever_o good_a and_o bad_a mingle_v together_o we_o know_v the_o reason_n be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o first_o in_o these_o congregation_n either_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v or_o else_o with_o it_o untruethe_n be_v also_o teach_v for_o where_o no_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v there_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v no_o church_n if_o therefore_o together_o with_o the_o truth_n there_o may_v also_o false_a assertion_n be_v teach_v how_o can_v that_o congregation_n be_v say_v that_o it_o can_v err_v when_o it_o do_v manifest_o err_v and_o if_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n be_v only_o teach_v than_o the_o reprobate_a hypocrite_n which_o believe_v it_o not_o do_v always_o err_v when_o they_o reject_v the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n and_o of_o they_o be_v almost_o in_o every_o place_n the_o great_a number_n as_o for_o the_o godly_a 24.24_o mat._n 24.24_o though_o they_o be_v never_o suffer_v so_o to_o err_v that_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o error_n and_o perish_v christ_n himself_o say_v etc._n gal._n 2.11_o etc._n etc._n 1._o cor._n 1.11_o etc._n etc._n gal._n 1.6_o etc._n etc._n the_o elect_n can_v not_o be_v seduce_v no_o not_o by_o the_o miracle_n and_o wonder_n of_o antichrist_n namely_o not_o to_o the_o end_n &_o to_o their_o destruction_n yet_o that_o they_o may_v err_v aswell_o every_o one_o several_o as_o many_o gather_v together_o and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o manner_n but_o also_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v manifest_o teach_v by_o the_o history_n both_o sacred_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o by_o that_o which_o have_v happen_v to_o godly_a and_o holy_a bishop_n and_o their_o church_n in_o the_o east_n and_o in_o the_o west_n xxi_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n peter_n doubtless_o do_v err_v at_o antioch_n &_o many_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o more_o in_o that_o of_o galatia_n be_v seduce_v by_o the_o false_a apostle_n do_v most_o gross_o err_v though_o they_o be_v soon_o after_o call_v back_o again_o by_o the_o apostle_n from_o their_o error_n david_n also_o teach_v that_o the_o very_a sheep_n of_o christ_n may_v err_v 119.176_o psal_n 119.176_o when_o he_o say_v i_o have_v go_v astray_o like_o a_o sheep_n that_o be_v lose_v and_o why_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o church_n needful_a for_o all_o the_o godly_a if_o they_o can_v not_o err_v sith_o therefore_o every_o godly_a man_n in_o each_o particular_a church_n and_o the_o same_o a_o true_a and_o pure_a church_n have_v often_o and_o do_v often_o err_v &_o that_o hypocrite_n be_v never_o endue_v
with_o true_a faith_n whereby_o they_o be_v right_o mind_v how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v of_o any_o particular_a church_n that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v that_o then_o can_v much_o less_o be_v affirm_v of_o those_o church_n from_o whence_o the_o truth_n be_v banish_v and_o wherein_o lie_n do_v prevail_v and_o iniquity_n itself_o and_o palpable_a darkness_n they_o sure_o which_o be_v such_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n 3.15_o 1._o tim_n 3.15_o if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o every_o particular_a flock_n and_o each_o several_a sheep_n thereof_o can_v so_o far_o forth_o not_o err_v as_o it_o hear_v only_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n christ_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o as_o oft_o as_o it_o hear_v not_o his_o voice_n but_o harken_v to_o stranger_n voice_n it_o can_v straight_o way_n do_v no_o other_o they_o err_v but_o in_o a_o word_n see_v god_n in_o the_o scatter_n and_o dissolve_v of_o all_o church_n do_v yet_o reserve_v some_o unto_o himself_o who_o he_o hold_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o by_o who_o ministry_n he_o will_v spread_v the_o same_o still_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n altogether_o be_v never_o suffer_v to_o err_v xxii_o without_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v no_o salvation_n here_o hence_o we_o consequent_o learn_v &_o believe_v that_o this_o catholic_a church_n only_o be_v so_o holy_a and_o have_v salvation_n so_o annex_v to_o it_o that_o out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v no_o holiness_n no_o salvation_n since_o that_o in_o it_o only_o the_o truth_n so_o shine_v without_o which_o salvation_n can_v come_v to_o none_o that_o without_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o truth_n and_o last_o since_o none_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v save_v 3.13_o joh._n 3.13_o for_o no_o man_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a son_n of_o man_n withal_o his_o whole_a body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n that_o not_o unfit_o peter_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o noah_n ark_n in_o which_o alone_a mankind_n be_v preserve_v 2.5_o 2._o pet._n 2.5_o and_o out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o be_v find_v perish_v in_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n 7.23_o gen._n 7.23_o now_o that_o which_o we_o confess_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o a_o thing_n most_o assure_v the_o same_o of_o every_o particular_a one_o we_o can_v grant_v namely_o to_o say_v that_o in_o this_o church_n alone_o or_o that_o in_o the_o romish_a or_o that_o at_o constantinople_n the_o rrueth_n and_o salvation_n be_v obtain_v so_o that_o without_o it_o shall_v be_v no_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o to_o depart_v from_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o forsake_v the_o truth_n our_o salvation_n and_o christ_n for_o some_o church_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o unless_o thou_o departe_v from_o the_o fellowship_n thereof_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o part_n nor_o fellowshipp_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o her_o head_n xxiii_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o certain_a person_n or_o place_n moreover_o we_o confess_v this_o catholic_a church_n because_o it_o be_v catholic_a therefore_o to_o be_v tie_v to_o no_o certain_a place_n person_n or_o people_n so_o that_o who_o so_o will_v be_v of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v needs_o get_v he_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o wittemberge_n or_o he_o must_v depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o church_n by_o shop_n or_o minister_n see_v christ_n be_v in_o all_o place_n and_o every_o where_o may_v the_o word_n be_v hear_v the_o seal_n of_o baptism_n receive_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n keep_v and_o a_o communion_n with_o the_o saint_n have_v and_o wheresoever_o these_o thing_n have_v place_n there_o be_v the_o church_n that_o not_o without_o good_a cause_n be_v the_o donatist_n condemn_v who_o shut_v up_o the_o church_n in_o africa_n only_o and_o not_o in_o all_o africa_n neither_o but_o in_o certain_a parcel_n of_o it_o where_o they_o themselves_o dwell_v and_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v only_o there_o nor_o less_o worthy_o be_v they_o to_o be_v condemn_v which_o account_n the_o church_n of_o no_o foreign_a country_n for_o true_a church_n but_o only_o such_o as_o consist_v of_o man_n of_o their_o own_o nation_n xxiv_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v partly_o visible_a and_o partly_o invisible_a to_o conclude_v we_o believe_v this_o church_n to_o be_v partly_o indeed_o visible_a and_o partly_o invisible_a but_o these_o in_o diverse_a respect_n visible_a in_o that_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n visible_o handle_v and_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n minister_a and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n pray_v not_o only_o private_o but_o also_o public_o to_o god_n exercise_v the_o work_n of_o love_n towards_o their_o neighbour_n and_o glorify_v god_n by_o their_o whole_a life_n which_o thing_n can_v not_o indeed_o be_v perform_v but_o they_o must_v sensible_o be_v perceive_v and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v mere_o invisible_a how_o can_v it_o be_v discern_v from_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o wicked_a again_o we_o call_v it_o also_o invisible_a first_o because_o it_o have_v in_o it_o many_o hypocrite_n mingle_v which_o perform_v all_o these_o outward_a thing_n as_o the_o elect_v do_v and_o who_o be_v the_o elect_a for_o of_o they_o only_o consist_v the_o church_n sure_o it_o can_v be_v know_v of_o we_o but_o only_o of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o the_o lord_n alone_o know_v who_o be_v he_o 2.28.29_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o ro._n 2.28.29_o whereunto_o also_o tend_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n he_o be_v not_o a_o jewe_n which_o be_v one_o outward_a but_o one_o within_o moreover_o because_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o outward_a appearance_n be_v evermore_o press_v with_o manifold_a calamity_n in_o the_o world_n the_o number_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o christ_n faith_n be_v sometime_o so_o diminish_v &_o all_o christian_n congregation_n thrust_v up_o into_o such_o narrow_a strait_n that_o it_o may_v seem_v even_o to_o be_v none_o at_o all_o remain_a namely_o when_o there_o be_v no_o long_o any_o public_a assembly_n wherein_o god_n name_n be_v call_v upon_o as_o the_o history_n both_o sacred_a and_o ecclesiastical_a do_v most_o clear_o and_o plentiful_o teach_v to_o have_v often_o happen_v whenas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o god_n always_o reserve_v some_o church_n unto_o himself_o upon_o the_o earth_n 28.20_o mat._n 16.18_o &_o 28.20_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o do_v we_o also_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n confess_v in_o the_o creed_n say_v i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n namely_o to_o have_v ever_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o be_v now_o and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n even_o upon_o the_o earth_n for_o proper_o we_o believe_v always_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v not_o always_o see_v 11.1_o heb._n 11.1_o this_o be_v our_o confession_n concern_v the_o militant_a church_n what_o it_o be_v how_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o triumphant_a how_o diverse_a oft_o time_n in_o itself_o how_o of_o many_o particular_n it_o be_v make_v one_o catholic_a church_n by_o what_o mark_n the_o true_a may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a what_o manner_n of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o what_o manner_n of_o consent_n may_v prove_v a_o true_a church_n how_o not_o for_o every_o difference_n in_o the_o very_a doctrine_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v break_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n and_o in_o what_o thing_n it_o consist_v of_o what_o estimation_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o what_o respect_n also_o it_o may_v err_v and_o in_o what_o it_o can_v err_v and_o how_o without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o last_o how_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o how_o invisible_a it_o remain_v that_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o government_n thereof_o chap._n xxv_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n and_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n i._o the_o church_n be_v govern_v of_o christ_n we_o believe_v 1.17_o col._n 1.17_o that_o as_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v have_v their_o be_v and_o be_v rule_v by_o christ_n so_o he_o also_o govern_v the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o kingdom_n &_o his_o body_n by_o a_o more_o peculiar_a mean_n then_o all_o other_o thing_n as_o be_v author_n king_n 3.6_o eph._n 1.23_o luc._n 11.33_o heb._n 3.6_o and_o head_n of_o the_o same_o as_o the_o angel_n say_v of_o
it_o belong_v to_o the_o true_a government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o some_o godly_a and_o wife_n man_n be_v appoint_v which_o may_v visit_v the_o sick_a person_n comfort_v they_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o confirm_v they_o in_o faith_n and_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o those_o sick_a person_n be_v call_v of_o god_n forth_o of_o this_o world_n to_o encourage_v and_o animate_v they_o to_o their_o departure_n as_o know_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o soon_o as_o they_o go_v forth_o of_o their_o body_n do_v present_o pass_v into_o heaven_n to_o christ_n convey_v thither_o by_o christ_n spirit_n and_o accompany_v with_o his_o angel_n and_o that_o they_o be_v bless_v which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n let_v they_o also_o pray_v with_o they_o and_o accompany_v those_o who_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n with_o their_o prayer_n even_o unto_o the_o last_o gasp_n and_o so_o commend_v they_o to_o christ_n and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o their_o body_n be_v with_o reverence_n to_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o grave_n as_o our_o church_n both_o in_o word_n and_o in_o their_o deed_n do_v teach_v open_o witness_v that_o they_o be_v temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o indeed_o destroy_v but_o shall_v again_o in_o their_o time_n be_v restore_v and_o raise_v again_o to_o life_n and_o that_o eternal_a mean_o while_o the_o grave_n and_o churchyard_n or_o burial_n place_n must_v be_v keep_v decent_o and_o religious_o as_o it_o be_v with_o we_o &_o the_o child_n parent_n kinsman_n and_o alliance_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v to_o be_v comfort_v &_o all_o those_o office_n of_o humanity_n which_o can_v be_v perform_v we_o endeavour_v to_o perform_v unto_o they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v and_o if_o so_o be_v any_o psalm_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v any_o where_o song_n in_o carry_v of_o the_o course_n or_o any_o sermon_n make_v unto_o the_o people_n after_o the_o dead_a body_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o earth_n wherein_o also_o some_o honest_a mention_n may_v be_v make_v of_o other_o that_o be_v dead_a who_o religious_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n this_o we_o do_v not_o disallow_v so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o for_o the_o comfort_n &_o profit_n of_o the_o live_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o believe_v also_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a loose_v from_o their_o body_n do_v present_o pass_v into_o heaven_n to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o have_v no_o need_n of_o our_o prayer_n yet_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v promote_v and_o set_v forward_o upon_o any_o occasion_n whatsoever_o 34_o the_o church_n can_v right_o be_v govern_v without_o lawful_a free_a and_o christian_n meeting_n and_o synod_n of_o minister_n synod_n of_o synod_n this_o also_o we_o be_v assure_o persuade_v as_o we_o learn_v both_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o by_o continual_a experience_n that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o right_o be_v govern_v unless_o at_o know_a time_n there_o be_v meeting_n of_o minister_n aswell_o private_a in_o each_o several_a church_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v call_v consistory_n or_o consultation_n synedria_n synedria_n as_o also_o public_a and_o common_a in_o each_o province_n &_o kingdom_n which_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v use_v to_o be_v call_v provincial_a synod_n yea_o and_o also_o so_o much_o as_o may_v be_v common_a to_o all_o people_n in_o christendom_n which_o be_v call_v general_a counsel_n wherein_o it_o may_v be_v determine_v upon_o all_o matter_n pertain_v to_o the_o health_n preservation_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n every_o once_o free_a opinion_n may_v be_v hear_v &_o each_o thing_n conclude_v by_o common_a consent_n and_o out_o of_o other_o the_o most_o approve_a counsel_n as_o we_o read_v the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v 35_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n wherein_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n discipline_n of_o discipline_n for_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o discipline_n and_o without_o discipline_n it_o can_v be_v rule_v aright_o discipline_n be_v a_o mean_n and_o institution_n wherein_o we_o as_o scholar_n of_o christ_n do_v learn_v in_o his_o school_n how_o to_o live_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n aswell_o public_o as_o private_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o our_o own_o salvation_n it_o contain_v therefore_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o piety_n the_o beginning_n proceed_v &_o end_n 36_o discipline_n two_o fold_n further_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n be_v two_o fold_n one_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n people_n which_o of_o many_o be_v call_v vulgar_a discipline_n the_o other_o proper_a unto_o minister_n and_o to_o man_n appoint_v for_o church-office_n which_o therefore_o be_v use_v to_o be_v call_v clergy_n discipline_n 37_o the_o part_n of_o vulgar_a or_o common_a discipline_n that_o common_a and_o popular_a discipline_n consist_v chief_o in_o these_o matter_n first_o for_o the_o beginning_n when_o any_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n he_o must_v learn_v to_o know_v god_n and_o christ_n and_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v his_o will_n this_o be_v do_v by_o catechise_n wherein_o every_o one_o be_v teach_v the_o sum_n of_o christian_n religion_n and_o be_v teach_v he_o must_v profess_v his_o faith_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n &_o promise_v obedience_n unto_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o church_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o 28.20_o rom._n 10.10_o mat._n 28.20_o because_o not_o to_o go_v forward_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n be_v to_o go_v backward_o therefore_o they_o which_o be_v godly_a that_o they_o may_v true_o proceed_v and_o go_v on_o in_o godliness_n must_v often_o frequent_v the_o holy_a assembly_n at_o appoint_a time_n and_o place_n and_o give_v themselves_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o make_v prayer_n with_o other_o and_o practice_v charitable_a deed_n towards_o the_o poor_a bestow_v their_o gift_n and_o oblation_n liberal_o but_o see_v even_o in_o our_o proceed_n we_o do_v all_o fall_n some_o more_o greevous_o and_o with_o great_a offence_n to_o the_o church_n some_o less_o greevouslie_o therefore_o the_o three_o part_n consist_v in_o the_o censure_n of_o our_o life_n and_o action_n namely_o that_o every_o one_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o censure_n 5.20_o mat._n 18.15_o 1._o tim._n 5.20_o all_o the_o time_n of_o his_o life_n &_o yield_v unto_o brotherly_a correction_n and_o if_o any_o have_v fall_v into_o a_o grievous_a fault_n know_v unto_o the_o congregation_n and_o be_v reprehend_v have_v not_o true_o repent_v for_o which_o cause_n he_o may_v deserve_v to_o be_v drive_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n for_o a_o time_n and_o to_o be_v bind_v until_o he_o make_v amends_n and_o till_o he_o make_v public_a signification_n to_o the_o church_n of_o his_o true_a repentance_n let_v such_o a_o brother_n be_v exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v bind_v but_o when_o he_o have_v repent_v let_v he_o be_v loose_v receive_v into_o favour_n and_o admit_v into_o his_o former_a communion_n this_o be_v the_o first_o discipline_n the_o end_n whereof_o be_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v live_v unto_o god_n and_o at_o last_o also_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 38_o the_o part_n of_o the_o clergy_n discipline_n by_o the_o way_n albeit_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n aswell_o minister_n as_o lay_v man_n as_o they_o call_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o this_o christian_n discipline_n yet_o among_o the_o father_n come_v in_o a_o certain_a peculiar_a discipline_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o part_n it_o be_v to_o be_v ruler_n over_o other_o not_o only_o in_o word_n but_o also_o in_o example_n of_o life_n and_o diligent_a performance_n of_o their_o duty_n of_o this_o these_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n the_o first_o that_o they_o shall_v abstain_v from_o many_o thing_n which_o otherwise_o in_o some_o sort_n may_v be_v suffer_v in_o lay-man_n such_o as_o be_v many_o delight_n of_o the_o flesh_n glorious_a pomp_n sumptuous_a feast_n costly_a furniture_n profane_a attendant_n and_o such_o like_a matter_n the_o second_o that_o they_o shall_v cast_v aside_o all_o business_n of_o this_o life_n which_o may_v hinder_v from_o do_v their_o duty_n which_o consist_v chief_o in_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o holy_a thing_n in_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n of_o manner_n such_o business_n be_v warre-fare_a merchandise_n law_n cause_n look_v to_o victualler_n &_o tipple_a house_n and_o such_o base_a affair_n the_o three_o that_o they_o shall_v promise_v a_o peculiar_a obedience_n to_o their_o own_o bishop_n &_o metropolitan_a of_o their_o bishop_n in_o honest_a matter_n
it_o in_o the_o flesh_n as_o be_v a_o fello-worker_n with_o the_o deity_n in_o his_o human_a will_n consent_v to_o the_o divine_a and_o pronounce_v the_o word_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o as_o also_o leo_n the_o first_o 4_o epist_n 10._o c._n 4_o so_o expound_v it_o to_o flavianus_n say_v each_o form_n namely_o of_o god_n and_o man_n work_v with_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o itself_o as_o the_o word_n work_v that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o word_n &_o the_o flesh_n perform_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o flesh_n to_o forgive_v sin_n be_v the_o proper_a action_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o to_o say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o of_o the_o human_a thus_o far_o he_o vi_o in_o christ_n alone_o be_v offer_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o elect_a alone_o endue_v with_o faith_n it_o be_v receive_v but_o like_v as_o in_o christ_n alone_o our_o mediator_n &_o redeemer_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o have_v redemption_n by_o his_o blood_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n so_o as_o without_o christ_n there_o be_v none_o so_o also_o we_o believe_v that_o only_o the_o elect_a endue_v with_o true_a repentance_n and_o true_a faith_n and_o ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o member_n to_o their_o head_n be_v make_v partaker_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o although_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v declare_v unto_o all_o manner_n of_o man_n by_o the_o gospel_n yet_o to_o the_o reprobate_n as_o unrepentant_a and_o unbelieved_a they_o be_v not_o forgive_v but_o by_o their_o own_o fault_n and_o blame_n their_o sin_n do_v still_o remain_v vii_o all_o sin_n at_o once_o be_v forgive_v to_o the_o faithful_a elect_v we_o also_o believe_v that_o as_o christ_n by_o his_o one_o oblation_n satisfy_v not_o for_o some_o but_o for_o all_o our_o sin_n so_o also_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o that_o be_v true_o penitent_a of_o christ_n and_o in_o christ_n by_o the_o gospel_n the_o forgiveness_n not_o only_o of_o some_o of_o our_o sin_n but_o also_o of_o they_o altogether_o and_o the_o same_o communicate_v to_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o receive_v by_o faith_n etc._n mat._n 18.23_o etc._n etc._n see_v god_n declare_v by_o a_o parable_n that_o he_o forgive_v all_o our_o debt_n not_o part_n of_o it_o viii_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v bestow_v in_o the_o church_n only_o receive_v by_o faith_n only_o and_o that_o only_a in_o this_o life_n last_o to_o make_v a_o end_n we_o believe_v that_o as_o in_o christ_n alone_o be_v find_v remission_n of_o sin_n so_o the_o same_o also_o be_v dispose_v and_o bestow_v in_o the_o church_n only_o and_o as_o it_o be_v purchase_v for_o we_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o blood_n of_o he_o alone_o so_o also_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n only_o without_o our_o own_o merit_n and_o as_o in_o this_o life_n only_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v and_o by_o it_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n declare_v to_o the_o repentant_a and_o believer_n so_o also_o we_o can_v only_o in_o this_o life_n be_v make_v partaker_n thereof_o see_v after_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v for_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o church_n by_o her_o ministry_n can_v do_v nothing_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o forgiveness_n for_o man_n after_o they_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n demetr_v cyp._n ad_fw-la demetr_v as_o cyprian_n also_o say_v when_o a_o man_n be_v once_o go_v hence_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o repentance_n no_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n here_o life_n be_v either_o lose_v or_o get_v here_o he_o must_v provide_v for_o salvation_n by_o serve_v of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o effect_n of_o faith_n ix_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o creed_n according_a to_o these_o three_o point_n we_o interpret_v this_o article_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o creed_n as_o first_o that_o after_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n &_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v place_v this_o article_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o without_o the_o church_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o bestow_v nor_o have_v any_o place_n again_o that_o the_o same_o be_v place_v after_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o our_o faith_n wherein_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v holy_a &_o to_o consist_v of_o the_o society_n and_o communion_n of_o saint_n to_o witness_v unto_o we_o that_o not_o for_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o because_o we_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v communion_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n therefore_o we_o daily_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o final_o by_o this_o place_n of_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n we_o may_v well_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o after_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n obtain_v in_o this_o militant_a church_n there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v look_v for_o of_o the_o dead_a but_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o life_n everlasting_a x._o error_n thus_o we_o condemn_v the_o error_n wherein_o some_o do_v teach_v that_o after_o the_o fault_n forgive_v there_o remain_v a_o debt_n to_o be_v pay_v for_o the_o punishment_n and_o this_o punishment_n be_v eternal_a death_n by_o penitency_n be_v change_v into_o temporal_a pain_n which_o we_o must_v abide_v either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o after_o death_n in_o purgatory_n unless_o we_o be_v deliver_v thence_o by_o mass_n indulgence_n and_o other_o help_n second_o we_o condemn_v their_o blasphemy_n which_o seek_v for_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n any_o where_o then_o in_o christ_n and_o do_v so_o teach_v likewise_o they_o which_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o themselves_o and_o receive_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o true_a faith_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n we_o condemn_v also_o their_o sacrilegious_a doctrine_n which_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v forgive_v always_o to_o the_o faithful_a all_o their_o sin_n but_o ever_o retain_v some_o of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v satisfy_v for_o by_o fast_v alm_n deed_n prayer_n and_o other_o work_n of_o our_o own_o or_o else_o by_o the_o oblation_n of_o other_o man_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o priest_n chap._n xxviii_o of_o the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a i._o man_n soul_n do_v neither_o die_v with_o their_o body_n nor_o sleep_v after_o they_o be_v loose_v from_o the_o body_n nor_o lie_v still_o out_o of_o heaven_n or_o hell_n nor_o be_v torment_v in_o purgatory_n we_o believe_v that_o our_o soul_n do_v neither_o die_v with_o our_o body_n nor_o be_v loose_v from_o our_o body_n do_v sleep_v or_o not_o sleep_v do_v lie_v still_o in_o some_o close_a place_n both_o out_o of_o heaven_n and_o hell_n nor_o yet_o be_v torment_v in_o purgatory_n but_o that_o out_o of_o the_o body_n also_o man_n soul_n do_v live_v understand_v &_o desire_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a do_v reign_v with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o ungodly_a be_v torment_v in_o hell_n with_o the_o devil_n the_o lord_n himself_o say_v of_o they_o when_o the_o godly_a and_o merciful_a man_n do_v decay_n that_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n they_o that_o be_v their_o soul_n 16.9_o luc._n 16.9_o shall_v be_v receive_v into_o everlasting_a habitation_n 1.25_o luc._n 23.43_o luc._n 16.23_o act._n 1.25_o and_o teach_v in_o another_o place_n that_o they_o be_v with_o he_o in_o paradise_n but_o of_o the_o other_o by_o show_v a_o example_n of_o the_o rich_a glutton_n that_o they_o go_v down_o into_o hell_n that_o be_v into_o the_o place_n appoint_v for_o everlasting_a fire_n as_o we_o also_o read_v of_o judas_n there_o to_o be_v torment_v ii_o that_o the_o place_n be_v diverse_a where_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o unfaithful_a do_v live_v after_o the_o death_n of_o their_o body_n now_o see_v the_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o faithful_a and_o unfaithful_a man_n be_v so_o diverse_a we_o also_o believe_v that_o the_o place_n into_o which_o they_o pass_v be_v diverse_a that_o be_v to_o say_v everlasting_a tabernacle_n 2.4_o ●_o pet._n 2.4_o or_o heaven_n &_o paradise_n ordain_v for_o the_o godly_a and_o hell_n and_o the_o deep_n prepare_v for_o the_o wicked_a since_o to_o one_o of_o these_o place_n the_o scripture_n attribute_v a_o immeasurable_a light_n and_o to_o the_o other_o exceed_a darkness_n which_o christ_n call_v utter_a darkness_n and_o since_o the_o lord_n say_v 17.24_o mat._n 8.12_o joh._n 17.24_o that_o he_o desire_v that_o where_o he_o himself_o be_v there_o shall_v also_o be_v
same_o godly_a man_n eat_v sometime_o worthy_o sometime_o not_o worthy_o enough_o as_o in_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinth_n 11._o it_o appear_v and_o the_o ungodly_a also_o which_o receive_v only_o the_o element_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o sort_n for_o among_o they_o be_v also_o contain_v the_o hypocrite_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v even_o now_o we_o think_v good_a therefore_o here_o to_o join_v a_o more_o plain_a and_o clear_a distinction_n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o man_n which_o like_a as_o they_o come_v to_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n so_o may_v they_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o godly_a again_o of_o the_o ungodly_a some_o be_v whole_o and_o simple_o wicked_a as_o atheist_n godless_a man_n also_o jew_n and_o turk_n and_o all_o such_o as_o know_v nothing_o and_o believe_v nothing_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o hear_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o see_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nay_o they_o rather_o laugh_v at_o and_o contemn_v all_o such_o matter_n these_o if_o they_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n they_o neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o that_o also_o not_o as_o they_o be_v sacrament_n for_o they_o know_v not_o of_o what_o thing_n they_o be_v sacrament_n but_o only_a as_o they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o nature_n namely_o bread_n &_o wine_n for_o even_o so_o also_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o receive_v nothing_o but_o bare_a word_n and_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n another_o sort_n be_v indeed_o and_o before_o god_n wicked_a though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o in_o respect_n i_o mean_v in_o profession_n or_o in_o sight_n of_o man_n such_o as_o be_v the_o hypocrite_n in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o endue_v with_o the_o true_a and_o livelie_a faith_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_a but_o have_v only_o a_o temporal_a and_o a_o hypocritical_a belief_n these_o come_v to_o the_o supper_n do_v indeed_o eat_v and_o drink_v no_o more_o than_o the_o former_a that_o be_v bread_n &_o wine_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n by_o which_o alone_a christ_n body_n be_v true_o eat_v for_o all_o this_o the_o difference_n between_o these_o and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o little_a 1_o for_o the_o former_a see_v they_o believe_v none_o of_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o hear_v concern_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n nor_o perceive_v any_o thing_n with_o their_o mind_n as_o little_a do_v they_o eat_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n they_o eat_v bread_n as_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o other_o see_v that_o by_o their_o only_a historical_a hypocritical_a and_o temporal_a belief_n they_o understand_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o in_o some_o sort_n do_v believe_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v and_o do_v therefore_o by_o the_o same_o belief_n and_o mind_n they_o may_v be_v say_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o receive_v and_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o taste_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n offer_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n although_o they_o do_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n eat_v it_o see_v they_o do_v not_o swallow_v nor_o retain_v the_o same_o for_o this_o proper_o be_v to_o eat_v in_o the_o stomach_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o nourishment_n of_o their_o spirit_n but_o rather_o do_v spew_v or_o vomit_v out_o the_o same_o be_v taste_v and_o after_o a_o sort_n receive_v down_o for_o so_o also_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 6_o to_o the_o heb._n of_o those_o temporary_a professor_n that_o they_o taste_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o good_a word_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v they_o taste_v indeed_o and_o that_o also_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o be_v taste_v they_o cast_v it_o up_o again_o and_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o seed_n the_o temporary_a one_o be_v say_v to_o receive_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o word_n but_o that_o they_o keep_v it_o not_o and_o therefore_o bring_v forth_o no_o fruit_n by_o it_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o these_o wicked_a one_o which_o be_v most_o true_a of_o the_o second_o sort_n namely_o these_o temporary_a hypocrite_n let_v this_o then_o be_v the_o first_o difference_n hereuppon_o follow_v another_o difference_n between_o the_o eat_n of_o those_o and_o these_o 2_o they_o see_v the_o bread_n which_o they_o take_v into_o their_o mouth_n they_o nether_a acknowledge_v nor_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o they_o take_v it_o and_o eat_v it_o not_o as_o a_o sacrament_n but_o as_o common_a bread_n and_o therefore_o can_v they_o not_o be_v say_v to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n sacramentallie_o but_o these_o take_v the_o bread_n not_o as_o common_a bread_n but_o as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v say_v to_o eat_v christ_n body_n though_o not_o in_o very_a deed_n see_v they_o lack_v the_o mouth_n and_o tooth_n of_o true_a faith_n yet_o to_o eat_v it_o sacramentallie_o by_o a_o argument_n draw_v as_o they_o call_v it_o à_fw-la coniugatis_fw-la they_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o they_o eat_v christ_n body_n sacramental_o and_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o they_o eat_v not_o christ_n body_n in_o very_a deed_n but_o only_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o hereupon_o follow_v that_o exposition_n whereof_o we_o speak_v before_o that_o it_o be_v not_o ungodlie_a to_o say_v simple_o and_o absolute_o that_o the_o hypocrite_n do_v eat_v not_o only_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v not_o only_a bread_n but_o also_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o what_o sense_n namely_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o they_o of_o corinth_n in_o their_o first_o state_n be_v unclean_a ungodlie_a &c_n &c_n afterward_o he_o say_v they_o be_v not_o only_o wash_v which_o some_o may_v have_v interpret_v only_o of_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n but_o also_o sanctify_v and_o justify_v when_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o all_o make_v true_o such_o but_o as_o yet_o there_o lack_v not_o some_o hypocrite_n among_o they_o so_o all_o they_o which_o profess_v faith_n in_o christ_n do_v come_v to_o his_o supper_n and_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lotd_n body_n be_v say_v also_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n true_a body_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o sacramental_a union_n which_o cause_v that_o he_o which_o receive_v the_o sign_n be_v by_o the_o church_n judge_v to_o have_v receive_v also_o the_o thing_n signify_v because_o there_o be_v no_o fault_n either_o in_o the_o institutor_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o in_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o but_o that_o he_o which_o have_v receive_v &_o eat_v the_o one_o may_v have_v also_o receive_v and_o eat_v the_o other_o since_o christ_n by_o the_o minister_n do_v true_o offer_v they_o both_o and_o the_o soundness_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o upon_o our_o faith_n but_o upon_o christ_n institution_n so_o that_o if_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n but_o only_o the_o sign_n without_o the_o thing_n signify_v the_o fault_n be_v in_o our_o own_o self_n who_o receive_v one_o part_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o body_n and_o cast_v away_o the_o other_o part_n by_o our_o infidelity_n for_o a_o hypocritical_a faith_n be_v infidelity_n separate_v those_o thing_n which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v join_v by_o these_o thing_n it_o appear_v what_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o eat_n of_o those_o that_o be_v simple_o wicked_a &_o the_o hypocrite_n although_o neither_o sort_n can_v be_v say_v true_o to_o eat_v christ_n true_a body_n for_o such_o only_o do_v true_o eat_v christ_n who_o be_v also_o true_o ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a and_o livelie_a faith_n with_o which_o alone_a the_o elect_a be_v endue_v they_o which_o be_v dead_a corporal_o can_v no_o long_o eat_v corporal_a meat_n how_o then_o shall_v they_o which_o be_v dead_a spiritual_o be_v feed_v with_o spiritual_a food_n and_o only_o the_o faithful_a do_v therefore_o live_v because_o by_o a_o livelie_a faith_n they_o be_v join_v unto_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n as_o member_n to_o their_o head_n as_o branch_n to_o the_o vine_n as_o the_o bough_n to_o their_o tree_n and_o if_o as_o cyprian_n say_v it_o be_v meat_n of_o the_o mind_n not_o of_o the_o belly_n sure_o it_o be_v eat_v with_o the_o tooth_n not_o of_o the_o body_n but_o of_o a_o faithful_a mind_n which_o only_o the_o godly_a can_v do_v if_o
therefore_o whole_o every_o where_n nor_o according_a to_o his_o part_n but_o because_o he_o be_v the_o most_o simple_a essence_n 65_o wherefore_o whatsoever_o the_o ubiquitary_n do_v prate_v and_o babble_n argue_v either_o from_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n or_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n or_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n or_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o be_v or_o from_o the_o say_n all_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o and_o such_o like_a speech_n they_o evermore_o in_o this_o disputation_n infer_v one_o fallation_n to_o speak_v of_o none_o else_o at_o this_o time_n which_o be_v call_v non_fw-la causa_fw-la pro_fw-la causa_fw-la except_o by_o those_o argument_n they_o can_v prove_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o be_v make_v immealurable_a and_o infinite_a &_o also_o most_o simple_a such_o as_o be_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n 66_o yet_o do_v we_o not_o for_o all_o this_o deny_v but_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n though_o it_o remain_v in_o heaven_n yet_o it_o be_v true_o present_a unto_o we_o not_o only_o in_o his_o operation_n but_o in_o substance_n also_o 67_o but_o how_o or_o in_o what_o manner_n of_o presence_n sure_o a_o true_a presence_n but_o so_o as_o he_o be_v real_o present_a in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n in_o we_o and_o by_o our_o faith_n and_o if_o we_o may_v use_v similitude_n as_o the_o head_n be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a to_o all_o the_o member_n yea_o to_o the_o foot_n 68_o but_o how_o be_v these_o present_a one_o to_o another_o not_o in_o nearness_n of_o place_n for_o so_o the_o head_n of_o a_o pigmy_n be_v more_o present_a to_o his_o foot_n then_o the_o head_n of_o a_o giant_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o one_o soul_n and_o the_o joinctture_n of_o sinew_n and_o ligament_n 69_o see_v then_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n our_o body_n and_o christ_n body_n be_v true_o knit_v together_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n so_o that_o we_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o head_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n namely_o christ_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v this_o true_a presence_n without_o great_a blasphemy_n 70_o but_o for_o the_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v to_o signify_v by_o this_o phrase_n how_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n after_o many_o and_o most_o grievous_a labour_n rub_v through_o upon_o earth_n and_o many_o trouble_v endure_v for_o our_o redemption_n sake_n now_o glorious_o rest_v in_o heaven_n &_o so_o be_v dear_o belove_v of_o his_o father_n live_v in_o exceed_a happiness_n and_o appear_v in_o god_n sight_n in_o our_o behalf_n &_o that_o his_o intercession_n and_o propitiation_n be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o his_o father_n and_o that_o he_o reign_v with_o his_o father_n and_o by_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o judge_n which_o shall_v at_o length_n come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v place_v in_o the_o celestial_a throne_n 71_o for_o to_o sit_v as_o tertullian_n teach_v be_v proper_a to_o one_o that_o rest_v and_o as_o augustine_n teach_v to_o one_o that_o dwell_v reign_v and_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n neither_o be_v any_o say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n but_o such_o as_o be_v dear_o belove_v and_o near_a friend_n 72_o augustine_n indeed_o thus_o interprete_v this_o place_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n believe_v it_o 4_o lib._n 1._o ca._n 4_o he_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n believe_v it_o to_o sit_v understand_v to_o dwell_v as_o we_o say_v of_o any_o man_n ibid._n ibid._n in_o such_o a_o country_n he_o have_v sit_v three_o year_n so_o therefore_o believe_v you_o that_o christ_n dwell_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n there_o he_o be_v let_v not_o your_o heart_n ask_v you_o this_o question_n what_o do_v he_o do_v not_o seek_v for_o that_o which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o find_v there_o he_o be_v it_o suffice_v we_o he_o be_v bless_v and_o of_o this_o blessedness_n which_o be_v call_v the_o father_n right_a hand_n the_o name_n of_o this_o blessedness_n itself_o be_v call_v his_o father_n right_a hand_n for_o if_o we_o take_v it_o carnal_o then_o because_o he_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n the_o father_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n thou_o shall_v so_o set_v they_o the_o son_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o father_n at_o the_o leave_v there_o all_o be_v the_o right_a hand_n see_v there_o be_v nothing_o but_o blessedness_n also_o this_o sit_v of_o his_o belove_a 4_o lib._n 2._o ca._n 4_o you_o must_v not_o take_v it_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o humane_a part_n as_o if_o the_o father_n sit_v on_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o the_o son_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n but_o by_o the_o right_a hand_n understand_v that_o power_n which_o that_o man_n be_v entertain_v of_o god_n receive_v namely_o that_o he_o may_v afterwards_o come_v to_o judge_v which_o before_o come_v to_o be_v judge_v also_o 7_o lib._n 3._o ca._n 7_o who_o be_v he_o that_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n the_o man_n christ_n for_o in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n he_o be_v ever_o with_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o father_n &_o when_o he_o come_v forth_o unto_o we_o he_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o father_n for_o to_o be_v god_n be_v to_o be_v whole_o every_o where_n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v whole_o with_o the_o father_n whole_a in_o heaven_n whole_a on_o earth_n whole_a in_o the_o virgin_n womb_n whole_a on_o the_o cross_n whole_a in_o hell_n whole_a in_o paradise_n whether_o he_o bring_v the_o thief_n not_o at_o diverse_a time_n or_o diverse_a place_n do_v we_o say_v he_o be_v whole_a every_o where_n as_o now_o whole_a in_o one_o place_n and_o another_o time_n whole_a in_o another_o place_n but_o he_o be_v whole_a always_o and_o in_o all_o place_n also_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la but_o by_o this_o that_o the_o son_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o father_n right_a hand_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o man_n who_o christ_n take_v upon_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o power_n of_o a_o judge_n also_o 7_o lib._n 4._o ca._n 7_o the_o man_n which_o christ_n take_v on_o he_o now_o reign_v sit_v at_o the_o father_n right_a hand_n also_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la but_o in_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o equal_a to_o the_o father_n and_o always_o judge_v he_o be_v ever_o present_a but_o he_o shall_v come_v a_o redeemer_n in_o that_o form_n wherein_o he_o ascend_v 73_o so_o far_o from_o it_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o by_o the_o flt_n at_o god_n right_a hand_n the_o apostle_n mean_v to_o signify_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n be_v on_o earth_n and_o every_o where_o that_o he_o rather_o seem_v to_o teach_v they_o quite_o contrary_a see_v that_o in_o heaven_n only_o and_o not_o on_o this_o earth_n man_n blessedness_n consist_v and_o god_n be_v say_v to_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n not_o on_o earth_n and_o rather_o that_o he_o reign_v in_o heaven_n then_o on_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v say_v and_o believe_v that_o christ_n shall_v come_v not_o from_o earth_n but_o from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 74_o add_v this_o that_o as_o god_n foot_n by_o a_o certain_a humane_a affection_n or_o property_n at_o not_o say_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o on_o earth_n according_a to_o that_o say_n 7.49_o act._n 7.49_o heaven_n be_v my_o seat_n and_o earth_n my_o footstool_n so_o also_o we_o may_v with_o good_a reason_n say_v that_o his_o right_a hand_n have_v place_n in_o heaven_n rather_o than_o on_o earth_n 75_o we_o therefore_o conclude_v that_o as_o by_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n the_o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o be_v rather_o confute_v so_o neither_o by_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v of_o his_o sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n can_v the_o same_o be_v necessary_o infer_v 76_o nay_o if_o such_o a_o ubiquity_n be_v admit_v we_o do_v not_o only_o shake_v but_o even_o quite_o overthrow_v all_o these_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o his_o incarnation_n in_o the_o womb_n only_o of_o the_o virgin_n of_o his_o true_a death_n that_o be_v the_o true_a separation_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o his_o true_a resurrection_n of_o his_o flesh_n of_o his_o true_a and_o visible_a ascension_n from_o the_o earth_n into_o heaven_n of_o his_o true_a sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n last_o of_o his_o visible_a return_n from_o that_o place_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 77_o for_o a_o body_n that_o be_v every_o where_o
can_v be_v move_v from_o place_n to_o place_n according_a to_o it_o whole_a self_n as_o true_a philosophy_n teach_v &_o christian_n theology_n confirm_v which_o show_v that_o god_n therefore_o be_v not_o move_v from_o place_n to_o place_n because_o be_v immeasurable_a he_o file_v all_o thing_n 78_o neither_o can_v that_o body_n also_o which_o be_v every_o where_o be_v right_o say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o the_o leave_v of_o another_o but_o you_o must_v needs_o confound_v the_o substance_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v with_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o right_a hand_n at_o which_o &_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o he_o who_o right_a hand_n he_o sit_v at_o see_v therefore_o even_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fill_v heaven_n &_o earth_n be_v every_o where_o both_o all_o and_o each_o of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n 79_o final_o we_o think_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o invisible_a &_o unpalpable_a presence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n every_o where_o be_v neither_o true_a nor_o profitable_a 80_o not_o true_a indeed_o because_o we_o can_v never_o see_v the_o same_o show_v either_o by_o any_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o any_o necessary_a consequence_n draw_v out_o of_o they_o nay_o we_o have_v observe_v the_o same_o to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o old_a church_n right_o expound_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 81_o yea_o and_o we_o see_v it_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o without_o a_o manifest_a imply_v of_o a_o contradiction_n you_o can_v grant_v both_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o creed_n deliver_v and_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o author_n of_o this_o ubiquitary_a doctrine_n do_v deliver_v 82_o neither_o be_v it_o profitable_a because_o that_o which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a with_o god_n word_n to_o propound_v believe_v and_o observe_v it_o as_o agreeable_a and_o necessary_a unto_o salvation_n be_v a_o sin_n the_o lord_n say_v add_v not_o nor_o diminish_v and_o the_o apostle_n 6.23_o deut._n 12_o 32_o rom._n 14.23_o rom._n 6.23_o all_o that_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n 83_o final_o because_o if_o that_o opinion_n of_o the_o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n shall_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a it_o will_v be_v a_o hindrance_n that_o a_o man_n can_v not_o apprehend_v and_o eat_v with_o a_o mind_n lift_v up_o christ_n to_o the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v in_o heaven_n whereunto_o notwithstanding_o both_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o church_n call_v we_o say_v lift_v up_o your_o heart_n and_o seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n be_v sit_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n 84_o they_o they_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n which_o do_v not_o behold_v the_o same_o in_o heaven_n where_o indeed_o it_o be_v but_o imagine_v he_o to_o be_v real_o present_a every_o where_n in_o his_o own_o substance_n aesop_n dog_n leave_v the_o true_a flesh_n do_v foolish_o catch_v at_o the_o vain_a shadow_n of_o the_o flesh_n because_o it_o seem_v a_o big_a piece_n a_o question_n out_o of_o the_o 1._o of_o joh._n 4.3_o s._n john_n describe_v antichrist_n say_v every_o spirit_n which_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o true_a humane_a flesh_n be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v that_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n and_o see_v that_o christ_n never_o lay_v aside_o that_o flesh_n which_o he_o once_o take_v but_o carry_v it_o with_o he_o up_o into_o heaven_n and_o shall_v return_v again_o in_o the_o cloud_n in_o the_o same_o apparent_a unto_o all_o man_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a the_o question_n be_v of_o what_o spirit_n they_o be_v and_o by_o what_o name_n to_o be_v call_v who_o make_v no_o doubt_n with_o the_o old_a heretic_n to_o forge_v for_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o know_v not_o what_o kind_n of_o invisible_a flesh_n uncircumscribed_a unpalpable_a whole_a and_o in_o his_o whole_a substance_n forsooth_o real_o existing_a in_o all_o place_n in_o heaven_n in_o the_o star_n in_o the_o air_n in_o the_o earth_n under_o the_o earth_n in_o hell_n in_o all_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o parcel_n of_o the_o part_n yea_o and_o in_o the_o least_o parcel_n of_o the_o parcel_n against_o scripture_n and_o against_o the_o sound_a agreement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o ephesian_n year_n 1580._o 1_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 8_o ver_fw-la 7_o &_o 8_o in_o who_o we_o be_v elect_v unto_o salvation_n not_o only_o once_o redeem_v we_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o get_v the_o victory_n but_o do_v also_o daily_o dispense_v and_o communicate_v unto_o he_o the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n 2_o for_o it_o belong_v to_o a_o perfect_a redeemer_n not_o only_o by_o pay_v the_o ransom_n to_o redeem_v but_o also_o to_o make_v the_o redemption_n know_v to_o they_o that_o be_v redeem_v and_o to_o deliver_v they_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tyrant_n into_o freedom_n as_o it_o also_o belong_v to_o a_o good_a head_n to_o impart_v the_o life_n sense_n and_o motion_n which_o it_o have_v unto_o the_o member_n 3_o now_o christ_n use_v to_o dispense_v this_o grace_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v 13_o ver_fw-la 13_o by_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o salvation_n with_o which_o we_o join_v the_o sacrament_n as_o seal_n and_o instrument_n of_o salvation_n 4_o for_o by_o the_o gospel_n he_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o divine_a will_n 10_o ver_fw-la 9_o &_o 10_o concern_v our_o salvation_n through_o christ_n and_o concern_v the_o gather_v together_o aswell_o those_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o these_o that_o be_v on_o earth_n &_o concern_v the_o knit_n of_o they_o to_o one_o head_n christ_n 5_o neither_o do_v he_o only_o make_v know_v unto_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o gospel_n 13_o ver_fw-la 13_o but_o also_o effectual_o call_v &_o draw_v we_o to_o himself_o &_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o himself_o &_o so_o to_o the_o participation_n of_o redemption_n &_o salvation_n 6_o for_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 10_o ver_fw-la 13_o rom._n 10_o he_o use_v to_o stir_v up_o faith_n in_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o be_v receive_v into_o his_o communion_n 7_o for_o he_o give_v we_o his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o he_o regenerate_v we_o 13_o ver_fw-la 13_o and_o seal_v we_o with_o the_o express_a image_n of_o god_n to_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o a_o eternal_a inheritance_n 8_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n he_o stir_v up_o work_v and_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o study_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o good_a work_n 9_o and_o if_o it_o so_o be_v 14_o ver_fw-la 14_o we_o fall_v into_o sin_n such_o be_v our_o frailty_n he_o lift_v we_o up_o by_o repentance_n give_v unto_o we_o &_o make_v we_o more_o assure_v of_o forgiveness_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n through_o the_o same_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v a_o pledge_n he_o more_o and_o more_o daily_o confirm_v we_o in_o that_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n 10_o and_o these_o benefit_n christ_n bestow_v on_o we_o never_o utter_o forsake_v we_o till_o he_o have_v bring_v we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o singular_a love_n towards_o we_o from_o the_o first_o redemption_n which_o be_v our_o redemption_n from_o the_o guilt_n and_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o the_o other_o redemption_n namely_o the_o full_a liberty_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o perfect_a assure_v and_o full_a possession_n of_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n 11_o but_o our_o lord_n jesus_n as_o he_o be_v our_o redeemer_n &_o the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 22_o ver_fw-la 22_o according_a to_o both_o the_o nature_n so_o also_o he_o communicate_v eternal_a life_n &_o salvation_n not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o also_o as_o he_o be_v man_n according_a to_o that_o same_o believe_v my_o son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o immediate_o after_o but_o that_o he_o may_v know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n he_o say_v to_o the_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n &_o go_v unto_o thy_o house_n where_o each_o nature_n work_v that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o it_o with_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o 12_o for_o as_o the_o nature_n be_v so_o unite_v within_o themselves_o in_o one_o person_n that_o yet_o there_o be_v make_v no_o
h._n zanchius_n his_o confession_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o now_o at_o length_n be_v 70._o year_n of_o age_n he_o causea_fw-la to_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o himself_o &_o his_o family_n english_v in_o sense_n agreeable_a and_o in_o word_n as_o answerable_a to_o his_o own_o latin_a copy_n as_o in_o so_o grave_a a_o man_n work_n be_v requisite_a for_o the_o profit_n of_o all_o the_o unlearnede_a sort_n of_o english_a christian_n that_o desire_v to_o know_v his_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n rom_n 10._o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n man_n confess_v to_o salvation_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n print_v by_o john_n legat_n printer_n to_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n 1599_o to_o ulysses_n martinengus_n earl_n of_o barchen_a hierome_n zanchy_a wish_n grace_n and_o peace_n what_o of_o what_o sort_n and_o how_o great_a the_o confusion_n &_o trouble_n be_v in_o this_o age_n of_o we_o noble_a earl_n throughout_o all_o christendom_n aswell_o about_o all_o other_o matter_n almost_o as_o more_o especial_o about_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a concern_v religion_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o do_v not_o see_v no_o good_a man_n that_o do_v not_o grieve_v at_o and_o no_o godly_a man_n that_o with_o great_a admiration_n of_o god_n judgement_n do_v not_o exceed_o bewail_v very_o great_a sure_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o this_o our_o age_n which_o through_o god_n singular_a gift_n have_v be_v find_v out_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o some_o faithful_a servant_n of_o christ_n and_o spread_v abroad_o far_o and_o wide_o have_v shine_v forth_o unto_o we_o as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n but_o i_o pray_v what_o and_o how_o many_o mist_n of_o error_n how_o diverse_a and_o black_a cloud_n of_o heresy_n have_v be_v stir_v up_o and_o rake_v out_o of_o the_o depth_n of_o hell_n by_o no_o small_a number_n of_o verlett_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o cast_v a_o darkness_n over_o this_o heavenly_a light_n i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o tyrant_n which_o ever_o have_v and_o yet_o do_v employ_v and_o bend_v all_o their_o sword_n all_o their_o power_n and_o the_o very_a force_n and_o might_n of_o their_o authority_n to_o this_o that_o these_o candelstick_n of_o brittle_a earth_n i_o confess_v wherein_o any_o of_o this_o light_n remain_v &_o shine_v be_v bruise_a &_o break_v by_o their_o iron-blowe_n the_o whole_a light_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n if_o god_n so_o please_v may_v be_v utter_o put_v out_o &_o extinguish_v &_o in_o place_n thereof_o that_o infernal_a darkness_n fetch_v again_o from_o hell_n may_v succeed_v &_o bear_v the_o whole_a sway_n for_o this_o very_a cause_n what_o in_o these_o our_o wretched_a time_n have_v be_v do_v what_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o slaughter_n of_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o man_n in_o many_o place_n commit_v and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n attempt_v more_o than_o once_o we_o have_v yet_o in_o fresh_a memory_n and_o what_o and_o by_o who_o the_o devil_n late_o assay_v in_o those_o valley_n of_o you_o though_o by_o god_n mighty_a hand_n defend_v you_o the_o slaughter_n succeed_v not_o to_o the_o wish_n of_o those_o ungodly_a wretch_n yourself_o know_v better_a than_o we_o do_v and_o now_o also_o what_o that_o ever-busie_a satan_n be_v for_o the_o same_o intent_n continual_o attempt_v what_o devise_n he_o purpose_v what_o treachery_n he_o study_v what_o weapon_n he_o prepare_v what_o war_n he_o broach_v against_o godly_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n who_o desire_v to_o have_v this_o heavenly_a light_n to_o shine_v in_o their_o dominion_n and_o labour_n to_o spread_v the_o same_o far_a and_o wide_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o lord_n himself_o know_v who_o dwell_v in_o the_o heaven_n who_o also_o be_v wont_a to_o scatter_v the_o wicked_a counsel_n of_o the_o ungodly_a &_o to_o disperse_v they_o as_o vain_a smoke_n through_o his_o incredible_a love_n and_o mercy_n towards_o we_o when_o it_o be_v most_o expedient_a for_o his_o church_n and_o when_o tyrant_n do_v look_v for_o nothing_o less_o than_o a_o disapointement_n of_o their_o intent_n which_o they_o so_o long_o and_o watchful_o provide_v for_o for_o witness_n take_v the_o pharaoh_n senacherib_n amans_fw-la antiochies_n julian_n and_o other_o such_o like_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n for_o still_o the_o promise_n abide_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o but_o to_o let_v pass_v tyrant_n and_o to_o return_v to_o the_o body_n of_o our_o christian_n commonwealth_n so_o miserable_o tear_v in_o pecces_fw-la who_o be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o except_o he_o be_v clean_o void_a of_o alpietie_n that_o behold_v such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o rent_n of_o this_o body_n into_o diverse_a shiver_n namely_o of_o all_o those_o which_o profess_v and_o call_v upon_o christ_n as_o true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n &_o the_o only_a redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n diverse_a of_o they_o defend_v diverse_a error_n most_o obstinate_o some_o many_o &_o those_o most_o gross_a other_o few_o and_o those_o not_o so_o weighty_a and_o upon_o these_o occasion_n pursue_v and_o hate_v on_o another_o with_o more_o than_o serpentine_a hatred_n and_o plague_a and_o torment_v on_o another_o with_o more_o than_o butcherly_a cruelty_n what_o man_n be_v he_o i_o say_v who_o behold_v these_o thing_n hear_v they_o and_o weigh_v they_o in_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o move_v with_o great_a grief_n sigh_v not_o lament_v nor_o pour_v not_o forth_o tear_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n once_o in_o time_n of_o old_a be_v for_o the_o great_a glory_n of_o her_o piety_n her_o heavenly_a doctrine_n her_o divine_a service_n christian_n discipline_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o faith_n against_o all_o heretic_n most_o famous_a and_o as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n shine_v far_o bright_a than_o all_o star_n so_o she_o shine_v far_o above_o all_o church_n on_o earth_n by_o example_n of_o her_o exceed_a christian_n piety_n that_o well_o and_o fit_o she_o deserve_v to_o be_v general_o call_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n but_o into_o what_o and_o into_o how_o great_a darkness_n and_o blindness_n do_v she_o after_o sink_v by_o god_n just_a judgement_n be_v as_o it_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o same_o still_o lie_v bury_v and_o drown_v he_o that_o in_o such_o great_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v not_o this_o be_v blind_a than_o a_o mole_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o new_a thing_n see_v the_o same_o happen_v first_o to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o israelite_n afterward_o to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n and_o to_o they_o in_o greece_n now_o to_o speak_v of_o those_o church_n which_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v make_v a_o apostasy_n or_o backslide_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v force_v through_o her_o wilfulness_n and_o tyranny_n at_o length_n to_o forsake_v she_o what_o horrible_a heresy_n in_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n by_o the_o minister_n of_o satan_n anabaptism_n libertinism_n arianisme_n samosatenisme_n martionisme_n eutychianisme_n nestorianisme_n and_o what_o not_o yea_o even_o atheism_n i_o grieve_v to_o speak_v it_o spread_v itself_o abundant_o the_o trusty_a minister_n of_o christ_n have_v withstand_v all_o these_o &_o in_o many_o place_n have_v beat_v down_o their_o devilish_a doctrine_n and_o have_v preserve_v their_o church_n reform_v by_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n free_a from_o these_o pestilent_a mischief_n and_o by_o god_n benefit_n do_v still_o preserve_v they_o so_o that_o we_o have_v no_o friendship_n nor_o deal_n with_o such_o manner_n offect_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o cockle_n can_v be_v clean_o weed_v out_o in_o all_o place_n many_o plague_n do_v still_o grow_v and_o increase_v every_o where_n and_o many_o wicked_a spirit_n do_v still_o come_v into_o the_o world_n what_o then_o shall_v a_o christian_n man_n who_o love_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n &_o his_o neighbour_n and_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o good_a name_n in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o small_a moment_n to_o be_v take_v and_o account_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o a_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n what_o i_o say_v shall_v a_o christian_n man_n do_v in_o such_o a_o confusion_n of_o thing_n such_o a_o dissagreement_n in_o opinion_n such_o a_o multitude_n of_o heresy_n such_o variety_n in_o religion_n i_o will_v if_o i_o can_v by_o a_o similitude_n declare_v my_o opinion_n agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n if_o a_o huge_a &_o a_o most_o mighty_a army_n of_o enemy_n shall_v overcome_v any_o country_n kill_v &_o spoil_v wheresoever_o they_o come_v so_o as_o
who_o can_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n and_o to_o continue_v the_o same_o the_o breast_n where_o the_o vital_a part_n lie_v must_v be_v arm_v round_o about_o with_o the_o breastplate_n of_o righteousness_n i_o say_v of_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n especial_o and_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n for_o who_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v to_o cope_v with_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a enemy_n in_o the_o battle_n unless_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n stand_v his_o helper_n and_o favourer_n by_o he_o and_o do_v from_o his_o heart_n hate_v iniquity_n against_o which_o &_o love_v righteousness_n for_o which_o the_o battle_n be_v begin_v we_o must_v have_v our_o loin_n gird_v about_o with_o the_o girdle_n of_o truth_n and_o our_o foot_n shod_a with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n that_o be_v it_o behoove_v we_o to_o be_v so_o arm_v on_o all_o part_n with_o the_o knowledge_n love_n and_o may_v of_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o must_v be_v ever_o ready_a and_o prepare_v to_o fight_v for_o the_o gospel_n hold_v in_o our_o left_a hand_n the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o we_o may_v receive_v and_o quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o the_o adversary_n but_o in_o our_o right_a hand_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherewith_o the_o enemy_n may_v be_v drive_v back_o and_o wound_v we_o shall_v indeed_o use_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n if_o against_o all_o the_o sophism_n and_o subtlety_n of_o heretic_n we_o hold_v fast_o those_o principle_n of_o faith_n whereof_o we_o speak_v howsoever_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v in_o refel_v their_o fine_a and_o subtle_a quirk_n &_o then_o have_v we_o use_v of_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o word_n if_o we_o convince_v the_o enemy_n by_o apparent_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o reason_n draw_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o they_o to_o which_o purpose_n it_o prevail_v not_o a_o little_a if_o we_o cast_v at_o the_o enemy_n sharp_a point_a dart_n &_o sting_a arrow_n out_o of_o the_o quiver_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o also_o we_o see_v those_o laeter_fw-la father_n themselves_o have_v do_v bring_v forth_o the_o testimony_n and_o argument_n of_o their_o predecessor_n against_o heretic_n we_o must_v therefore_o take_v unto_o we_o this_o whole_a complete_a armour_n of_o god_n with_o earnest_a prayer_n unto_o he_o that_o in_o these_o troublesome_a and_o evil_a day_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o withstand_v so_o many_o diverse_a and_o mighty_a enemy_n and_o in_o the_o end_n we_o may_v triumph_v over_o they_o 9_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o city_n and_o safety_n of_o each_o citizen_n how_o needful_a it_o be_v that_o the_o city_n be_v clean_o void_a of_o all_o the_o enemy_n favourer_n hireling_n close_a worker_n and_o traitor_n may_v live_v the_o more_o safe_o and_o quiet_o who_o that_o have_v any_o sight_n at_o all_o in_o thing_n past_a and_o present_a can_v be_v ignorant_a therefore_o the_o church_n governor_n and_o magistrate_n must_v take_v great_a care_n that_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n discipline_n it_o may_v heedful_o be_v look_v unto_o what_o doctrine_n each_o one_o profess_v and_o what_o life_n he_o lead_v &_o they_o which_o be_v teach_v and_o admonish_v will_v not_o amend_v to_o let_v they_o be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n open_o &_o separate_v from_o the_o holy_a assembly_n and_o from_o the_o conversation_n with_o the_o other_o faithful_a lest_o by_o their_o contagion_n other_o shall_v also_o be_v infect_v or_o lest_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v a_o little_a leven_n mar_v the_o whole_a lump_n but_o to_o every_o of_o the_o faithful_a let_v such_o obstinate_a man_n be_v as_o ethnic_n and_o publican_n and_o let_v this_o say_n of_o john_n be_v keep_v if_o any_o man_n come_v unto_o you_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n namely_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v concern_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o concern_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_n religion_n he_o receive_v not_o into_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n this_o discipline_n be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n of_o which_o tertullian_n in_o apolog_n the_o 39_o chapter_n speak_v the_o magistrate_n further_o be_v to_o punish_v by_o god_n commandment_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o fault_n or_o blasphemy_n 10_o that_o which_o in_o the_o end_n we_o say_v concern_v the_o last_o duty_n of_o each_o citizen_n the_o same_o be_v also_o in_o this_o business_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n very_o easy_a to_o be_v know_v i_o will_v it_o be_v as_o easy_a to_o be_v perform_v our_o faith_n therefore_o which_o we_o give_v and_o promise_v in_o baptism_n must_v constant_o be_v keep_v unto_o our_o prince_n christ_n jesus_n to_o our_o last_o end_n yea_o if_o need_n be_v even_o to_o the_o spill_n of_o our_o blood_n and_o our_o life_n and_o therefore_o that_o doctrine_n which_o by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o the_o manifest_a principle_n of_o faith_n and_o also_o by_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n we_o know_v assure_o to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o we_o must_v hold_v and_o keep_v with_o a_o most_o constant_a faith_n against_o all_o new_a opinion_n neither_o must_v we_o only_o keep_v they_o in_o our_o mind_n but_o also_o free_o confess_v the_o same_o with_o our_o mouth_n and_o open_o profess_v that_o we_o will_v never_o be_v willing_a to_o decline_v from_o the_o same_o and_o so_o we_o must_v profess_v it_o that_o unless_o we_o do_v it_o we_o can_v hope_v for_o no_o salvation_n for_o with_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v believe_v unto_o righteousness_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v unto_o salvation_n with_o god_n indeed_o who_o see_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n only_a faith_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a but_o with_o man_n and_o for_o man_n sake_n the_o free_a confession_n and_o profession_n thereof_o be_v also_o necessary_a he_o which_o be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o before_o man_n i_o will_v also_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o before_o my_o father_n say_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o we_o while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n must_v set_v forward_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o salvation_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o manner_n of_o religion_n we_o follow_v and_o with_o what_o faith_n we_o be_v by_o god_n grace_n endue_v that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o know_v who_o be_v the_o member_n thereof_o whereupon_o the_o same_o lord_n stir_v we_o up_o to_o this_o confession_n add_v he_o which_o confess_v i_o before_o man_n he_o will_v i_o also_o confess_v before_o my_o father_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v neither_o be_v allure_v by_o commodity_n to_o betray_v christ_n neither_o must_v we_o be_v skare_v by_o threaten_n and_o punishment_n from_o free_a confess_v of_o he_o but_o rather_o fix_v our_o eye_n upon_o the_o same_o lord_n the_o captain_n and_o perfect_a of_o our_o faith_n who_o with_o a_o willing_a gladness_n suffer_v the_o torment_n on_o the_o cross_n not_o care_v for_o the_o reproach_n &_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n we_o must_v constant_o run_v out_o our_o purpose_a race_n for_o he_o which_o endure_v unto_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o these_o ten_o point_n noble_a earl_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v declare_v the_o right_a mean_n by_o which_o in_o this_o so_o great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n about_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n in_o so_o great_a invasion_n &_o mighty_a power_n of_o evil_a spirit_n and_o in_o so_o cruel_a tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n every_o one_o may_v provide_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o he_o and_o he_o i_o have_v now_o almost_o 34._o year_n by_o god_n good_a gift_n do_v my_o endeavour_n that_o i_o may_v myself_o follow_v the_o same_o course_n and_o beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o do_v teach_v apparent_o that_o it_o be_v according_a to_o god_n will_v i_o have_v learn_v by_o experience_n of_o many_o year_n that_o it_o be_v a_o heavenly_a and_o excellent_a way_n for_o upon_o the_o very_a same_o occasion_n leave_v the_o babylonicall_a captivity_n i_o gatt_fw-mi i_o into_o the_o free_a church_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n as_o into_o defensed_a city_n first_o to_o the_o church_n in_o rhetia_n where_o i_o live_v eight_o month_n and_o more_o afterward_o unto_o geneva_n where_o likewise_o i_o abide_v nine_o month_n from_o thence_o i_o come_v to_o strausburgh_n where_o then_o flourish_v the_o french_a church_n and_o there_o i_o live_v and_o teach_v 11._o year_n but_o not_o without_o some_o conflict_n after_o the_o death_n of_o that_o ornament_n of_o the_o whole_a common_a wealth_n and_o parent_n of_o the_o school_n james_n sturmius_fw-la and_o the_o
loss_n of_o the_o grave_a elder_n after_o this_o be_v call_v to_o cleve_n i_o be_v pastor_n in_o that_o church_n about_o four_o year_n with_o what_o fruit_n though_o not_o without_o my_o cross_n your_o hon._n do_v very_o well_o know_v who_o such_o be_v your_o singular_a piety_n be_v ever_o my_o hearer_n and_o no_o small_a helper_n both_o with_o your_o labour_n and_o authority_n in_o set_v forward_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n afterward_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o that_o great_a &_o incomparable_a prince_n fredrick_n the_o 3._o i_o profess_v ten_o year_n in_o the_o university_n at_o heidelberg_n and_o at_o length_n i_o come_v to_o neustade_n the_o famous_a &_o most_o valiant_a prince_n john_n cassimiers_n town_n where_o in_o the_o school_n new_o erect_v i_o have_v teach_v seven_o year_n and_o more_o and_o where_o as_o yet_o be_v a_o wither_a old_a man_n but_o yet_o by_o god_n good_a favour_n in_o good_a health_n i_o live_v by_o my_o princess_n liberality_n and_o as_o by_o little_a and_o little_o i_o die_v unto_o the_o world_n in_o body_n so_o i_o do_v my_o best_a eudeavour_n that_o i_o may_v also_o more_o and_o more_o die_v unto_o it_o in_o mind_n i_o wish_v it_o indeed_o for_o the_o world_n pass_v away_o and_o the_o lust_n thereof_o and_o the_o little_a worm_n in_o jonas_n in_o a_o little_a hour_n space_n so_o gnaw_v the_o root_n of_o the_o gourd_n under_o the_o shadow_n whereof_o he_o lie_v secure_a that_o it_o be_v wither_v away_o the_o good_a prophet_n have_v not_o wherewith_o to_o shade_v himself_o from_o the_o exceed_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n this_o very_a mean_n i_o wish_v that_o i_o own_o child_n may_v also_o follow_v which_o be_v also_o a_o principal_a cause_n why_o i_o be_v willing_a now_o to_o publish_v this_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o christian_n doctrine_n not_o only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o myself_o but_o also_o of_o my_o whole_a family_n which_o indeed_o i_o write_v long_o since_o for_o another_o use_n &_o purpose_n but_o now_o bring_v forth_o into_o light_n because_o that_o my_o child_n beside_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n jesus_n which_o they_o daily_o hear_v deliver_v in_o our_o congregation_n may_v have_v also_o my_o own_o form_n of_o the_o same_o christian_n faith_n leave_v unto_o they_o by_o i_o which_o they_o may_v follow_v for_o although_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o christian_n doctrine_n i_o teach_v nothing_o in_o this_o my_o confession_n different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v preach_v in_o our_o church_n yet_o for_o that_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a how_o much_o the_o authority_n and_o example_n of_o parent_n prevail_v with_o child_n therefore_o i_o deem_v that_o i_o shall_v do_v a_o thing_n not_o a_o little_a beneficial_a unto_o they_o if_o i_o shall_v leave_v behind_o i_o in_o christ_n church_n some_o picture_n or_o image_n of_o myself_o i_o mean_v not_o of_o my_o countenance_n but_o of_o my_o faith_n which_o they_o may_v often_o look_v upon_o and_o by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v more_o and_o more_o encourage_v to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o proceed_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o final_o to_o the_o constancy_n and_o perseverance_n in_o true_a piety_n neither_o be_v it_o unknown_a unto_o i_o that_o hereunto_o belong_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o timothy_n if_o there_o be_v any_o man_n that_o provide_v not_o for_o his_o own_o and_o namely_o they_o of_o his_o household_n he_o deny_v the_o faith_n and_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o infidel_n to_o this_o i_o join_v also_o another_o cause_n which_o pertain_v proper_o to_o myself_o &_o i_o own_o estate_n that_o which_o hitherto_o i_o have_v in_o heart_n believe_v &_o with_o my_o mouth_n confess_v yea_o &_o many_o year_n public_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n both_o by_o word_n &_o by_o book_n publish_v my_o desire_n be_v to_o comprehend_v the_o same_o whole_o in_o one_o just_a volume_n that_o all_o posterity_n may_v know_v what_o my_o faith_n have_v be_v and_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a both_o now_o live_v and_o to_o come_v and_o so_o all_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n may_v evident_o understand_v that_o i_o never_o consent_v to_o such_o heresy_n as_o do_v now_o spread_v all_o about_o or_o ever_o heretofore_o do_v spread_v special_o see_v that_o if_o i_o have_v be_v deceive_v in_o any_o one_o thing_n i_o submit_v i_o to_o right_a judgement_n therein_o and_o i_o wish_v that_o my_o escape_n may_v be_v examine_v &_o reform_v by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o by_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n now_o to_o dedicate_v this_o my_o book_n unto_o your_o hon._n i_o be_v induce_v by_o many_o and_o those_o very_a honest_a cause_n which_o i_o trust_v shall_v not_o be_v disallow_v either_o of_o you_o or_o any_o other_o good_a man_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o a_o book_n not_o ill_o contain_v good_a doctrine_n shall_v have_v a_o good_a patron_n who_o both_o for_o his_o piety_n will_v and_o for_o his_o learning_n can_v defend_v the_o same_o and_o that_o constant_o whereunto_o how_o much_o the_o nobility_n of_o blood_n and_o generosity_n of_o mind_n if_o they_o be_v join_v with_o true_a piety_n can_v help_v we_o have_v learn_v by_o long_a expetience_n for_o it_o be_v proper_a unto_o a_o noble_a man_n to_o be_v constant_a in_o a_o matter_n commendable_a and_o worthy_a of_o honour_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o from_o any_o honest_a purpose_n either_o by_o weal_n or_o woe_n sincerity_n and_o constancy_n be_v such_o virtue_n as_o can_v fall_v into_o rustical_a and_o scruile_a mind_n add_v hereunto_o that_o i_o judge_v it_o a_o thing_n honest_a and_o necessary_a that_o there_o shall_v some_o monument_n be_v extant_a to_o all_o man_n in_o all_o age_n of_o my_o duetiful_a obseruamce_n to_o you_o &_o of_o our_o christian_n friendship_n for_o the_o friendship_n which_o proceed_v of_o virtue_n and_o be_v therefore_o sincere_a and_o sound_a be_v a_o thing_n both_o with_o god_n and_o man_n most_o worthy_a of_o all_o praise_n such_o as_o be_v between_o david_n and_o jonathan_n peter_n and_o john_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o as_o all_o have_v not_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v so_o all_o have_v not_o true_a friendship_n &_o as_o faith_n so_o also_o love_n be_v from_o god_n say_v john_n and_o spring_v from_o true_a piety_n and_o virtue_n we_o doubtless_o be_v not_o settle_v through_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o through_o christ_n piety_n religion_n and_o love_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n whereunto_o afterward_o be_v add_v a_o likeness_n of_o our_o mind_n study_n &_o manner_n and_o a_o most_o sweet_a converse_v together_o for_o many_o year_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v and_o so_o confirm_v that_o it_o can_v not_o by_o any_o though_o very_o great_a distance_n of_o place_n no_o not_o in_o many_o year_n be_v diminish_v or_o weaken_v what_o that_o it_o have_v not_o only_o continue_v hitherto_o firm_a and_o constant_a but_o also_o have_v ever_o and_o still_o do_v seem_v more_o and_o more_o daily_a to_o increase_v the_o holy_a ghost_n more_o and_o more_o kindle_v this_o brotherly_a love_n in_o our_o heart_n i_o sure_o for_o my_o part_n do_v well_o feel_v how_o great_a a_o desire_n be_v in_o i_o both_o to_o see_v you_o and_o to_o speak_v with_o you_o yea_o and_o to_o embrace_v you_o in_o the_o lord_n as_o also_o i_o well_o understand_v both_o by_o your_o letter_n unto_o i_o and_o by_o your_o kind_a deal_n in_o my_o behalf_n what_o great_a care_n you_o have_v of_o i_o so_o true_a friendship_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o wont_a continual_o to_o be_v preserve_v and_o increase_v and_o sure_o such_o good_a thing_n as_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o may_v also_o be_v for_o the_o profit_n of_o other_o those_o we_o ought_v to_o show_v forth_o &_o celebrate_v by_o all_o mean_n that_o we_o can_v for_o his_o glory_n &_o the_o edification_n of_o our_o brethren_n therefore_o as_o it_o be_v god_n will_v that_o the_o particular_a league_n of_o friendship_n of_o some_o of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n so_o this_o of_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o perpetual_a silence_n hereunto_o also_o beside_o that_o with_o your_o singular_a benevolence_n &_o favour_n you_o have_v respect_v not_o only_a myself_o as_o be_v say_v but_o also_o my_o dear_a kinsman_n and_o all_o that_o honest_a and_o christian_n family_n of_o the_o limacii_n such_o also_o have_v be_v your_o good_a benefit_n and_o office_n towards_o i_o that_o unless_o i_o will_v be_v utter_o unthankful_a i_o must_v needs_o mind_n if_o not_o a_o full_a recompense_n yet_o at_o least_o a_o honest_a declaration_n of_o a_o grateful_a heart_n especial_o see_v true_a friendship_n can_v consist_v among_o
place_n next_o unto_o the_o canonical_a book_n v._o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v prove_v only_o by_o the_o canonical_a book_n and_o therefore_o we_o use_v only_o the_o canonical_a book_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 59_o hieron_n in_o praef_n in_o lib._n sal._n cypr._n in_o sym_n p._n 377._o con._n laod._n cap._n 59_o and_o with_o the_o father_n we_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v use_v but_o we_o think_v the_o rest_n to_o be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o rule_n be_v before_o sufficient_o prove_v vi_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n take_v not_o their_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n wherefore_o this_o we_o hold_v without_o all_o controversy_n and_o we_o think_v it_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v that_o although_o the_o church_n be_v teach_v of_o the_o first_o father_n namely_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o receive_v their_o doctrine_n immediate_o from_o god_n and_o commit_v the_o same_o to_o writing_n and_o be_v also_o instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v deliver_v to_o the_o posterity_n by_o a_o continue_n and_o perpetual_a tradition_n which_o be_v canonical_a and_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a book_n yea_o and_o have_v give_v and_o shall_v always_o give_v testimony_n unto_o they_o of_o the_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a truth_n yet_o that_o these_o writing_n have_v not_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o same_o church_n but_o of_o god_n only_o their_o only_a proper_a author_n and_o therefore_o that_o of_o themselves_o because_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o have_v power_n over_o all_o man_n and_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v simple_o believe_v and_o obey_v of_o all_o vii_o yet_o that_o the_o church_n authority_n do_v much_o avail_n to_o make_v man_n believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n although_o we_o deny_v not_o by_o the_o way_n but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o especial_a force_n to_o move_v man_n to_o the_o hear_n and_o read_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o augustine_n i_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n for_o so_o he_o mean_v unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v move_v i_o 5._o tom._n 6._o cont_n epi._n fund_z ca._n 5._o yet_o the_o same_o augustine_n notwithstanding_o in_o all_o place_n pronounce_v that_o his_o belief_n come_v not_o from_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o bolie_a spirit_n who_o gift_n faith_n be_v viii_o that_o the_o church_n have_v nopower_n over_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o to_o dispute_v whether_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o and_o much_o more_o to_o set_v down_o the_o affirmative_a part_n as_o though_o the_o church_n over_o and_o above_o the_o gift_n of_o know_v the_o spirit_n and_o of_o discern_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o other_o and_o of_o testify_v of_o they_o and_o of_o interpret_n of_o they_o shall_v have_v also_o authority_n either_o of_o add_v too_o or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o and_o of_o dispense_n with_o they_o we_o judge_v it_o more_o than_o sacrilege_n 19_o deut._n 4.2_o &_o 5.31_o &_o 12.32_o apoc._n 22.18_o &_o 19_o for_o god_n command_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v add_v or_o diminish_v nor_o any_o one_o shall_v decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a but_o all_o together_o shall_v simple_o obey_v he_o speak_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o thing_n ix_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v so_o perfect_a that_o nothing_o may_v be_v add_v to_o or_o take_v from_o they_o for_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o holy_a and_o meerlie_a perfect_a plentiful_o contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v unto_o they_o &_o write_v with_o such_o perfection_n and_o wisdom_n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v take_v from_o they_o x._o and_o therefore_o man_n ought_v to_o rest_v upon_o they_o wherefore_o we_o even_o as_o all_o godly_a man_n ought_v to_o do_v do_v rest_n ourselves_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o holy_a write_n hold_v that_o same_o speak_v by_o the_o apostle_n 3.16_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o all_o scripture_n inspire_v from_o above_o be_v profitable_a to_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n xi_o nothing_o must_v be_v establish_v concern_v religion_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v reform_v by_o it_o we_o hold_v therefore_o 9_o dist_n 9_o that_o nothing_o must_v be_v determine_v concern_v religion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o have_v not_o apparent_a testimony_n in_o the_o canonical_a book_n or_o may_v out_o of_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o manifest_a and_o necessary_a consequence_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n there_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n any_o thing_n either_o concern_v doctrine_n or_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o same_o aught_o by_o some_o lawful_a mean_n either_o quite_o to_o be_v take_v away_o or_o else_o to_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o that_o all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n ought_v lawful_o to_o be_v judge_v and_o decide_v out_o of_o the_o same_o holy_a scripture_n xii_o tradition_n true_o apostolical_a and_o catholic_a be_v to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n in_o mean_a while_n which_o it_o be_v manifest_o know_v have_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n 8._o aug._n tom_n 7._o con_v donat._n lib._n 4._o ca._n 24._o &_o tom_n 2._o 2d_o jan._n ep_v 118._o d._n 11._o c._n 8._o to_o have_v be_v ever_o observe_v in_o all_o church_n as_o that_o of_o hallow_v the_o lord_n day_n in_o place_n of_o the_o sabaoth_n and_o such_o like_a and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o express_a commandment_n in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o observe_n of_o they_o yet_o we_o judge_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n xiii_o the_o scripture_n be_v very_o perspicuous_a in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o yea_o we_o think_v and_o know_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n not_o only_o plentiful_o but_o plain_o and_o perspicuouslie_o to_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o since_o god_n never_o speak_v unto_o his_o people_n but_o in_o their_o natural_a language_n which_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a injustice_n and_o tyranny_n to_o forbid_v the_o read_n of_o they_o to_o any_o man_n &_o consequent_o the_o turn_n of_o they_o into_o the_o proper_a tongue_n of_o any_o nation_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v will_v and_o command_v shall_v be_v read_v of_o all_o man_n for_o their_o own_o salvation_n sake_n yea_o &_o shall_v be_v continual_o bear_v about_o in_o their_o hand_n day_n and_o night_n xiiii_o the_o faithful_a interpretation_n by_o learned_a godly_a man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v contemn_v although_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o those_o matter_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a yet_o we_o dissolve_v not_o the_o interpretation_n and_o exposition_n of_o skilful_a and_o learned_a godly_a man_n 5.21_o 1._o thess_n 5.21_o aswell_o aimcient_a as_o late_a namely_o such_o as_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o scripture_n be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n and_o that_o in_o correspondence_n to_o the_o chief_a principle_n of_o faith_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v contain_v both_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o also_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o true_a general_a and_o of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a counsel_n gather_v together_o against_o those_o which_o be_v notorious_a heretic_n xv._o the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o faith_n and_o foundation_n of_o religion_n for_o our_o faith_n nether_a can_v nor_o aught_o to_o ground_v upon_o any_o other_o thing_n 10.17_o rom._n 10.17_o than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o faith_n may_v be_v always_o of_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereunto_o whatsoever_o in_o any_o man_n work_n be_v repugnant_a we_o reject_v it_o whatsoever_o be_v agreeable_a we_o embrace_v it_o but_o that_o which_o stand_v in_o a_o newtralitie_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v expedient_a or_o not_o expedient_a to_o the_o church_n we_o allow_v or_o disallow_v it_o and_o so_o we_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v or_o disallow_v chap._n ii_o of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n and_o property_n i._o that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n distinct_a in_o three_o person_n as_o we_o be_v teach_v therefore_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 4.6_o deu._n 4.6_o which_o be_v his_o own_o word_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o god_n that_o be_v one_o simple_a indivisible_a eternal_a live_v
all_o into_o everlasting_a glory_n with_o christ_n neither_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o christ_n purpose_v to_o foreshow_v unto_o we_o the_o second_o by_o the_o first_o and_o the_o three_o by_o the_o second_o that_o by_o that_o which_o be_v already_o make_v we_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v vi_o as_o the_o first_o union_n be_v make_v that_o satisfaction_n may_v be_v make_v for_o our_o sin_n so_o the_o second_o be_v make_v that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o satisfaction_n we_o believe_v therefore_o that_o let_v pass_v those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v not_o to_o this_o matter_n in_o hand_n we_o may_v come_v near_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o everlasting_a will_n of_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o of_o himself_o also_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n like_a as_o he_o take_v upon_o himself_o into_o unity_n of_o his_o person_n our_o flesh_n that_o be_v man_n nature_n conceive_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n that_o he_o may_v in_o himself_o purge_v we_o of_o our_o sin_n and_o in_o that_o flesh_n he_o most_o perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v make_v obedient_a unto_o his_o father_n even_o unto_o death_n and_o at_o the_o length_n the_o same_o flesh_n be_v offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n he_o obtain_v in_o himself_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o we_o so_o also_o that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o partaker_n of_o this_o salvation_n by_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o flesh_n assume_v for_o we_o he_o be_v willing_a &_o accustom_a to_o take_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o knit_v and_o join_v all_o his_o elect_a unto_o he_o in_o another_o kind_n of_o union_n namely_o in_o such_o a_o couple_a as_o in_o it_o we_o may_v be_v unite_v with_o he_o though_o not_o into_o one_o person_n yet_o into_o one_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o every_o one_o of_o we_o member_n and_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n vii_o as_o the_o first_o be_v make_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o be_v the_o second_o as_o we_o certain_o know_v that_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o first_o union_n couple_v unto_o himself_o our_o flesh_n and_o blood_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o he_o be_v conceive_v man_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o without_o sin_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o he_o be_v call_v the_o man_n from_o heaven_n so_o also_o in_o the_o second_o union_n he_o do_v communicate_v his_o flesh_n and_o his_o blood_n and_o his_o whole_a self_n unto_o we_o and_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n do_v knit_v join_v and_o incorporate_v we_o into_o he_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o his_o spirit_n that_o always_o the_o bond_n where_o with_o christ_n be_v couple_v with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o christ_n may_v be_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o as_o it_o do_v bring_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o virgin_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v flesh_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o our_o bone_n so_o also_o by_o work_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o incorporate_n we_o into_o christ_n it_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o likewise_o by_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n especial_o see_v he_o stir_v up_o that_o faith_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o embrace_v he_o for_o true_a god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o a_o perfect_a saviour_n viii_o the_o union_n of_o we_o with_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a yet_o so_o as_o it_o be_v true_a and_o real_a so_o we_o believe_v that_o this_o other_o union_n also_o be_v almost_o no_o less_o than_o the_o former_a so_o spiritual_a if_o we_o may_v so_o speak_v that_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a &_o real_a because_o that_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n we_o although_o remain_v on_o the_o earth_n yet_o be_v true_o and_o real_o couple_v with_o the_o body_n blood_n and_o soul_n of_o christ_n reign_v in_o heaven_n so_o as_o this_o mystical_a body_n consist_v of_o christ_n as_o the_o head_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a member_n sometime_o be_v simple_o name_v christ_n so_o great_a be_v the_o conjunction_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o they_o with_o christ_n that_o sure_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v say_v amiss_o that_o as_o the_o first_o union_n be_v make_v of_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n so_o this_o be_v make_v of_o many_o person_n as_o it_o be_v into_o one_o nature_n 5.30_o 2._o pet._n 1.4_o eph._n 5.30_o according_a to_o those_o say_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o of_o his_o flesh_n ix_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n how_o straight_o this_o union_n be_v for_o like_a as_o the_o soul_n in_o a_o man_n because_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o no_o less_o whole_a in_o the_o head_n and_o in_o each_o member_n than_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o body_n together_o it_o cause_v that_o all_o the_o member_n do_v unite_v and_o join_v themselves_o into_o one_o body_n under_o one_o head_n even_o so_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n spirit_n because_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o christ_n and_o in_o every_o of_o the_o faithful_a it_o cause_v that_o all_o of_o we_o knit_v spiritual_o together_o both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n into_o one_o we_o be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o body_n with_o christ_n our_o head_n a_o body_n i_o say_v mystical_a and_o spiritual_a because_o it_o be_v join_v and_o compact_v by_o a_o secret_a band_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n x._o this_o union_n because_o it_o be_v make_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v be_v hinder_v by_o any_o distance_n of_o place_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o this_o true_a and_o real_a union_n though_o spiritual_a of_o our_o body_n &_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v let_v by_o no_o distance_n of_o place_n though_o never_o so_o great_a because_o that_o spirit_n be_v so_o mighty_a in_o operation_n as_o it_o reach_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n and_o beyond_o and_o join_v in_o one_o no_o less_o strict_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v on_o earth_n with_o their_o head_n in_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n than_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n join_v together_o the_o hand_n and_o leg_n and_o other_o member_n into_o one_o body_n with_o the_o head_n yea_o though_o that_o man_n be_v so_o great_a that_o his_o head_n do_v reach_v unto_o the_o nine_o sphere_n and_o his_o foot_n stand_v fast_o in_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o great_a be_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o soul_n they_o how_o great_a be_v that_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o true_a and_o almighty_a god_n xi_o the_o spirit_n by_o who_o this_o union_n be_v make_v be_v give_v of_o christ_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n furthermore_o we_o believe_v that_o his_o spirit_n whereby_o christ_n both_o couple_v himself_o unto_o we_o and_o we_o unto_o he_o &_o join_v his_o flesh_n with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o he_o be_v communicate_v of_o the_o same_o christ_n unto_o we_o by_o his_o mere_a grace_n when_o and_o where_o and_o how_o he_o please_v yet_o ordinary_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o thing_n be_v a_o visible_a testimony_n which_o we_o read_v how_o that_o they_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n by_o faith_n and_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n or_o upon_o whosoever_o the_o hand_n be_v lay_v beside_o the_o invisible_a grace_n receive_v also_o diverse_a sensible_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n xii_o this_o union_n be_v the_o especial_a end_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o sacrament_n whereupon_o we_o do_v easy_o gather_v which_o be_v the_o principal_a end_n both_o of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n name_o this_o communion_n with_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_a who_o suffer_v and_o die_v for_o we_o but_o now_o reign_v in_o heaven_n and_o impart_v salvation_n and_o life_n to_o his_o choose_a which_o communion_n be_v begin_v here_o but_o be_v to_o be_v perfect_v in_o heaven_n so_o that_o we_o by_o this_o true_a &_o real_a copulation_n of_o ourselves_o with_o his_o flesh_n &_o blood_n and_o his_o whole_a person_n may_v also_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o be_v purchase_v by_o he_o and_o still_o remain_v and_o
which_o be_v also_o in_o christ_n do_v so_o real_o couple_v we_o with_o he_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n with_o he_o and_o among_o ourselves_o yea_o all_o of_o we_o one_o new_a man_n in_o the_o same_o head_n christ_n for_o in_o those_o two_o respect_n namely_o one_o of_o the_o spirit_n by_o who_o the_o other_o of_o the_o head_n 2.14_o eph._n 2.14_o to_o who_o we_o be_v join_v paul_n say_v all_o the_o faithful_a be_v one_o new_a man_n xviii_o by_o the_o union_n with_o christ_n the_o participation_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n be_v convey_v unto_o us._n now_o of_o this_o communion_n with_o christ_n there_o follow_v and_o depend_v the_o participation_n of_o his_o benefit_n and_o of_o salvation_n get_v and_o remain_v for_o we_o in_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o as_o the_o branch_n can_v draw_v no_o nourishment_n from_o the_o vine_n nor_o the_o member_n from_o the_o head_n nor_o the_o lively_a stone_n from_o the_o foundation_n unless_o they_o be_v real_o join_v with_o their_o foundation_n with_o their_o head_n with_o the_o tree_n with_o the_o vine_n &_o abide_v in_o they_o so_o neither_o can_v we_o from_o christ_n our_o head_n our_o foundation_n our_o tree_n our_o vine_n unless_o we_o be_v true_o graft_v into_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o do_v abide_v in_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n wherefore_o they_o do_v we_o very_o great_a injury_n that_o say_v we_o therefore_o deny_v the_o true_a participation_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o we_o affirm_v a_o participation_n only_o of_o his_o gift_n and_o benefit_n because_o we_o will_v not_o admit_v which_o we_o can_v admit_v that_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n do_v pass_v real_o through_o our_o mouth_n into_o our_o body_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o a_o true_a and_o a_o essential_a communion_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o faith_n since_o nothing_o can_v knit_v more_o strict_o diverse_a substance_n and_o nature_n into_o one_o than_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n be_v compound_v of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n surelye_o if_o that_o communion_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o only_a spirit_n and_o by_o faith_n with_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o able_a to_o save_v unless_o he_o shall_v also_o pass_v through_o the_o mouth_n into_o our_o body_n christ_n have_v provide_v but_o slender_o for_o his_o church_n therefore_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o baptism_n he_o will_v have_v the_o same_o communion_n to_o be_v make_v 12.13_o 1._o joh._n 1.3_o 1._o co._n 12.13_o as_o john_n witness_v of_o the_o first_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n of_o the_o second_o this_o therefore_o be_v our_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a communion_n with_o christ_n in_o general_a and_o therefore_o of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o salvation_n and_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n xix_o error_n wherefore_o we_o disallow_v their_o error_n which_o teach_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n be_v communicate_v to_o man_n operatum_fw-la opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la by_o the_o work_n wrought_v as_o they_o call_v it_o without_o faith_n and_o without_o the_o true_a unite_n with_o christ_n yea_o &_o we_o condemn_v their_o blasphemy_n who_o labour_n to_o prove_v it_o may_v be_v do_v by_o work_n not_o command_v of_o god_n but_o devise_v by_o man_n and_o full_a of_o superstition_n &_o idolatry_n and_o they_o also_o which_o set_v nought_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n do_v teach_v that_o salvation_n be_v communicate_v aswell_o without_o as_o with_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o much_o more_o those_o which_o affirm_v that_o all_o infant_n in_o their_o mother_n womb_n aswell_o of_o faithful_a parent_n as_o of_o infidel_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o gospel_n see_v first_o the_o gospel_n and_o then_o the_o sacrament_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o outward_a instrument_n whereby_o our_o redeemer_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n use_v to_o offer_v and_o bestow_v the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n &_o remission_n of_o sin_n upon_o the_o world_n and_o to_o communicate_v himself_o unto_o we_o his_o elect_a and_o to_o incorporate_v we_o likewise_o into_o himself_o &_o so_o to_o make_v we_o indeed_o partaker_n of_o that_o salvation_n and_o life_n which_o we_o have_v in_o he_o therefore_o we_o have_v purpose_v brief_o and_o plain_o to_o declare_v unto_o god_n church_n what_o our_o faith_n be_v concern_v the_o same_o i._o the_o gospel_n what_o it_o be_v concern_v the_o gospel_n therefore_o according_a to_o the_o signification_n receive_v and_o use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n concern_v christ_n preach_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n bring_v the_o best_a and_o most_o gladsome_a tiding_n to_o the_o world_n namely_o that_o mankind_n be_v redeem_v by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o there_o be_v prepare_v for_o all_o man_n 3.2_o mat._n 3.2_o if_o they_o repent_v &_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o free_a remission_n of_o all_o their_o sin_n salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n wherefore_o it_o be_v fit_o call_v of_o the_o apostle_n 1.13_o eph._n 1.13_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o salvation_n ii_o the_o gospel_n be_v promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n but_o publish_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o albeit_o that_o this_o mystery_n even_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n be_v reveal_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o yet_o that_o which_o they_o preach_v be_v rather_o euangelical_n promise_v and_o those_o reserve_v among_o the_o jew_n than_o the_o gospel_n itself_o which_o be_v to_o be_v publish_v to_o all_o nation_n since_o they_o foretell_v of_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o come_v but_o do_v not_o declare_v the_o thing_n present_a or_o that_o be_v pass_v 1.10_o rom._n 1.2_o 1._o pet._n 1.10_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o peter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n iii_o aswell_o the_o father_n be_v save_v by_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o promise_n concern_v christ_n the_o redeemer_n as_o we_o which_o believe_v in_o the_o gospel_n mean_o while_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o aswell_o the_o father_n 4.3_o rom._n 4.3_o who_o believe_v in_o those_o evangelicall_a promise_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n be_v save_v 1.10_o heb._n 1.10_o as_o we_o also_o by_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o gospel_n tell_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v and_o that_o he_o have_v redeem_v the_o world_n be_v save_v as_o the_o apostle_n both_o in_o other_o place_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n do_v large_o teach_v we_o concern_v abraham_n &_o to_o the_o hebrews_n concern_v all_o the_o other_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o foul_a blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o only_o earthly_a matter_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o father_n and_o that_o they_o receive_v only_o such_o and_o not_o heavenly_a as_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o look_v what_o the_o gospel_n be_v unto_o we_o proper_o receive_v the_o same_o be_v the_o evangelicall_a promise_n to_o they_o 1.16_o rom._n 1.16_o namely_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n unto_o every_o believer_n iv_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n touch_v the_o substance_n be_v most_o ancient_a and_o eternal_a whereby_o we_o know_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n touch_v the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v not_o new_a but_o most_o ancient_a and_o preach_v unto_o the_o father_n even_o from_o the_o world_n creation_n so_o as_o john_n not_o unfit_o call_v the_o gospel_n 14.6_o apo._n 14.6_o a_o everlasting_a gospel_n v._o the_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n how_o many_o and_o what_o furthermore_o there_o be_v three_o especial_a point_n in_o the_o gospel_n which_o we_o be_v call_v upon_o to_o perform_v repentance_n towards_o god_n faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 28.10_o act._n 20.21_o mar._n 1.4_o mat._n 28.10_o and_o a_o care_n to_o observe_v whatsoever_o jesus_n christ_n have_v will_v and_o command_v vi_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n the_o gospel_n therefore_o which_o set_v out_o unto_o we_o christ_n with_o the_o whole_a favour_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n with_o the_o purge_n &_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o with_o the_o whole_a salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n
overthrow_v commonwealth_n this_o be_v our_o faith_n concern_v the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n ix_o error_n we_o condemn_v therefore_o the_o antinomi_n &_o whosoever_o disallow_a the_o moral_a law_n and_o cast_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o church_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n or_o nothing_o appertain_v to_o christian_n and_o do_v reprove_v those_o magistrate_n which_o labour_v to_o bring_v in_o moses_n political_a precept_n among_o their_o people_n chap._n xiiii_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n because_o god_n to_o make_v perfect_a that_o communion_n with_o christ_n wherein_o consist_v the_o whole_a participation_n of_o salvation_n will_v not_o only_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o itself_o alone_o but_o also_o other_o external_a sign_n apply_v and_o join_v to_o the_o word_n of_o which_o two_o consist_v a_o sacrament_n therefore_o after_o our_o confession_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v also_o adjoin_v our_o confession_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o same_o brief_a and_o plain_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o chief_a article_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n i._o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sacrament_n we_o know_v that_o a_o sacrament_n be_v proper_o a_o holy_a covenant_n or_o oath_n and_o promise_n on_o both_o side_n that_o be_v make_v between_o god_n &_o his_o people_n not_o simple_o but_o establish_v and_o confirm_v by_o sacred_a rite_n &_o ceremony_n as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n between_o god_n and_o abraham_n and_o between_o christ_n and_o we_o in_o baptism_n which_o succeed_v the_o circumcision_n therefore_o sacrament_n be_v often_o take_v of_o the_o father_n for_o that_o whole_a action_n either_o of_o baptism_n or_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherein_o there_o go_v before_o a_o promise_n on_o both_o side_n holy_o confirm_v with_o external_a rite_n and_o seal_n or_o sign_n and_o even_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o afterward_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n they_o understand_v by_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n only_o the_o rite_n and_o sign_n add_v to_o the_o word_n and_o this_o last_o signification_n have_v be_v much_o use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o therefore_o call_v a_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o signification_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n not_o the_o word_n alone_o nor_o the_o element_n alone_o but_o the_o element_n water_n or_o bread_n &_o wine_n join_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n according_a to_o that_o same_o of_o augustine_n to_o the_o element_n come_v the_o word_n and_o then_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n ii_o sacrament_n of_o what_o thing_n they_o be_v sacrament_n but_o because_o every_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o some_o thing_n this_o thing_n we_o say_v be_v that_o which_o be_v mean_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n namely_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n or_o rather_o christ_n himself_o with_o grace_n &_o salvation_n place_v in_o he_o for_o he_o do_v the_o gospel_n whole_o propound_v or_o set_v out_o unto_o we_o and_o unto_o his_o communion_n as_o the_o word_n so_o the_o sacrament_n also_o be_v institute_v and_o do_v draw_v our_o mind_n by_o their_o signification_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v outward_o give_v we_o call_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o he_o which_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o wardly_a and_o that_o which_o be_v do_v without_o we_o call_v his_o seal_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n work_v inward_o in_o our_o heart_n iii_o of_o what_o part_n a_o sacrament_n consist_v hereby_o also_o we_o know_v of_o what_o part_n proper_o consist_v a_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o the_o word_n and_o outward_a sign_n but_o so_o as_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o represent_v by_o they_o and_o whereof_o they_o be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o that_o whereof_o any_o thing_n be_v a_o sacrament_n can_v not_o be_v the_o sacrament_n itself_o nor_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n since_o every_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o some_o other_o thing_n than_o itself_o mean_o while_o we_o do_v not_o simple_o separate_v the_o thing_n itself_o from_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v but_o among_o the_o father_n and_o most_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o learned_a writer_n under_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n be_v comprehend_v that_o itself_o whereof_o any_o thing_n be_v a_o sacrament_n as_o by_o the_o name_n of_o baptism_n not_o only_o be_v understand_v the_o outward_a wash_n with_o water_n and_o the_o word_n but_o also_o be_v contain_v the_o very_a inward_a cleanse_n of_o the_o conscience_n from_o sin_n &_o regeneration_n therefore_o we_o embrace_v that_o say_n of_o ireneus_fw-la of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o it_o consist_v of_o a_o earthly_a matter_n and_o a_o heavenly_a neither_o do_v we_o ourselves_o use_v to_o forbear_v such_o kind_n of_o speech_n when_o we_o talk_v of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o yet_o in_o this_o sense_n not_o that_o it_o be_v proper_o a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n since_o it_o be_v rather_o that_o to_o the_o participation_n whereof_o the_o sacrament_n do_v bring_v we_o but_o that_o the_o sacrament_n have_v a_o mystical_a relation_n unto_o it_o and_o by_o the_o band_n or_o knot_n of_o this_o relation_n the_o earthly_a matter_n be_v couple_v with_o the_o heavenly_a and_o thus_o do_v we_o reconcile_v many_o say_n of_o the_o learned_a writer_n and_o of_o the_o father_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a meaning_n when_o indeed_o their_o opinion_n be_v one_o &_o the_o same_o every_o where_n most_o of_o they_o call_v sacrament_n simple_o by_o the_o name_n of_o sign_n figure_n token_n tip_n antytipe_n form_n seal_n sealinge_n ceremony_n visible_a word_n and_o such_o like_a name_n other_o say_v it_o consist_v of_o a_o earthly_a matter_n &_o a_o heavenly_a which_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v we_o declare_v even_o now_o but_o all_o often_o call_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n after_o the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o all_o man_n have_v mean_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n these_o three_o thing_n the_o word_n the_o sign_n add_v to_o the_o word_n and_o the_o thing_n where_o of_o they_o be_v sign_n iu_o cause_n why_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o external_a sign_n add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o why_o they_o be_v call_v visible_a word_n we_o believe_v also_o and_o free_o confess_v that_o these_o visible_a sign_n by_o god_n institution_n be_v add_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o word_n for_o a_o more_o full_a and_o firm_a confirmation_n of_o the_o word_n in_o our_o mind_n since_o it_o be_v even_o unto_o such_o a_o end_n that_o every_o where_o among_o all_o nation_n they_o use_v to_o put_v their_o seal_n to_o writing_n and_o to_o testament_n which_o be_v also_o the_o cause_n why_o augustine_n call_v the_o outward_a sign_n &_o the_o thing_n object_n to_o our_o sense_n visible_a word_n because_o indeed_o they_o be_v institute_v to_o this_o end_n and_o add_v to_o the_o word_n that_o they_o may_v do_v that_o which_o the_o word_n do_v that_o be_v that_o the_o same_o which_o the_o word_n signify_v to_o our_o ear_n the_o sign_n may_v represent_v to_o our_o eye_n &_o other_o sense_n and_o so_o may_v confirm_v the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o as_o by_o the_o word_n faith_n be_v stir_v up_o in_o our_o mind_n so_o also_o by_o the_o outward_a sign_n as_o it_o be_v seal_v with_o seal_n it_o may_v be_v more_o thorough_o confirm_v and_o increase_v and_o last_o that_o as_o the_o word_n so_o also_o the_o holy_a sign_n be_v instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o we_o be_v bring_v unto_o that_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o do_v conjoin_v therein_o and_o we_o have_v no_o doubt_n but_o all_o this_o be_v institute_v of_o god_n for_o our_o infirmity_n and_o ignorance_n and_o for_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v help_v not_o only_o by_o the_o word_n but_o also_o by_o the_o visible_a sign_n by_o which_o faith_n proper_o we_o take_v hold_v on_o jesus_n christ_n and_o grow_v together_o in_o he_o v._o where_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v not_o rehearse_v there_o be_v no_o sacrament_n &_o therefore_o without_o use_n they_o be_v nothing_o but_o as_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o sign_n be_v add_v to_o the_o word_n not_o for_o superstition_n but_o for_o great_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o also_o that_o the_o word_n in_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v necessary_a not_o to_o charm_v we_o but_o to_o stir_v up_o faith_n in_o we_o so_o that_o where_o the_o
malice_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v no_o part_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n many_o also_o as_o say_v augustine_n do_v eat_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o the_o bread_n the_o lord_n for_o as_o they_o that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o all_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n declare_v therein_o unless_o they_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o former_a ill-life_n and_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o obtain_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v represent_v and_o offer_v by_o the_o sacrament_n because_o they_o receive_v the_o same_o sacrament_n unless_o they_o have_v also_o true_a repentance_n and_o faith_n fourteen_o by_o the_o unworthiness_n of_o the_o receiver_n the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o take_v away_o nor_o weaken_v neither_o yet_o do_v we_o thereby_o weaken_v or_o take_v away_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o force_n and_o power_n give_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n which_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o depend_v not_o upon_o the_o unworthines_n of_o the_o minister_n or_o receiver_n but_o on_o the_o faith_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n the_o institutor_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o even_o as_o the_o gospel_n do_v keep_v unto_o itself_o always_o both_o the_o signification_n though_o it_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o all_o and_o the_o power_n of_o give_v all_o thing_n which_o it_o offer_v though_o all_o be_v not_o make_v partaker_n thereof_o even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n those_o visible_a word_n do_v the_o like_a namely_o that_o as_o the_o gospel_n of_o itself_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n but_o indeed_o to_o none_o but_o the_o believer_n so_o also_o the_o sacrament_n be_v always_o the_o work_a instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o salvation_n howsoever_o none_o receive_v this_o powerful_a work_n but_o the_o true_a believer_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o apostle_n fear_v not_o to_o call_v they_o all_o which_o be_v baptize_v 6.11_o 1._o cor._n 6.11_o holy_a renew_a righteousse_n although_o they_o know_v that_o among_o they_o be_v many_o hypocrite_n for_o by_o such_o speech_n they_o declare_v the_o great_a power_n give_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o sacrament_n &_o what_o we_o shall_v believe_v they_o will_v work_v unless_o perhaps_o our_o hypocrisy_n do_v hinder_v they_o in_o which_o sense_n if_o a_o man_n say_v that_o who_o so_o do_v eat_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o also_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n that_o be_v it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o with_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o author_n and_o distributor_n thereof_o but_o who_o so_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n must_v needs_o also_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o offer_v by_o it_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o speech_n we_o can_v disallow_v so_o that_o such_o exposition_n may_v be_v add_v by_o which_o the_o people_n may_v be_v instruct_v and_o those_o false_a opinion_n conceive_v before_o of_o the_o work_n wrought_v may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n xv._o between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o matter_n be_v a_o sacramental_a union_n and_o what_o it_o be_v and_o although_o we_o say_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o sacrament_n or_o include_v in_o they_o namely_o either_o physical_o or_o local_o or_o corporal_o or_o also_o by_o any_o knot_n or_o band_n as_o though_o god_n have_v simple_o promise_v the_o very_a matter_n themselves_o to_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n howsoever_o they_o lack_v faith_n so_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v they_o unto_o unrepentant_a and_o unbeliever_n yet_o we_o take_v not_o away_o all_o conjunction_n and_o copulation_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v with_o the_o sign_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v &_o confess_v a_o sacramental_a that_o be_v such_o a_o union_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o a_o sacrament_n with_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o this_o sacramental_a union_n consist_v in_o a_o certain_a mystical_a and_o holy_a relation_n namely_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sign_n do_v signify_v the_o thing_n and_o offer_v they_o to_o be_v receive_v &_o the_o thing_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o sign_n and_o be_v give_v to_o be_v receive_v no_o otherwise_o they_o the_o union_n be_v between_o the_o word_n signify_v &_o exhibit_v and_o between_o the_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n signify_v and_o exhibit_v but_o the_o conjunction_n aswell_o that_o of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o this_o of_o the_o word_n with_o the_o thing_n themselves_o hang_v or_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n the_o institutor_n who_o when_o he_o institute_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v institute_v they_o to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n as_o be_v declare_v both_o that_o we_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o see_v and_o receive_v the_o sign_n shall_v by_o &_o by_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n to_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o they_o &_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o shall_v receive_v they_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n and_o may_v indeed_o be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n who_o they_o preach_v unto_o we_o and_o show_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o finger_n by_o their_o signification_n therefore_o as_o the_o conjunction_n of_o we_o with_o christ_n be_v all_o full_a of_o mystery_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o 5._o to_o the_o ephe._n so_o also_o we_o think_v this_o union_n both_o of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n with_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sign_n and_o sacrament_n to_o be_v mystical_a and_o spiritual_a xvi_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o judge_v therefore_o sacrament_n in_o few_o word_n to_o comprehend_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v external_a sign_n and_o such_o as_o be_v object_n to_o our_o sense_n join_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n for_o our_o ignorance_n and_o infirmity_n and_o the_o more_o earnest_o to_o stir_v up_o and_o confirm_v our_o faith_n by_o which_o all_o man_n be_v serious_o call_v to_o the_o true_a and_o real_a communion_n with_o christ_n and_o so_o with_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o park_v of_o all_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o which_o be_v signify_v &_o offer_v by_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o sign_n and_o as_o for_o the_o elect_a &_o faithful_a they_o be_v indeed_o draw_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n inward_o work_v in_o their_o mind_n that_o they_o be_v incorporate_v to_o christ_n may_v accomplish_v and_o make_v up_o the_o body_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n preordain_v of_o the_o father_n to_o his_o own_o praise_n and_o glory_n and_o their_o eternal_a blessedness_n xvii_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o in_o general_a they_o have_v in_o they_o common_a with_o we_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n we_o shall_v speak_v much_o see_v they_o be_v quite_o abrogate_a only_a this_o that_o the_o father_n have_v the_o same_o god_n the_o same_o promise_n the_o same_o mediator_n the_o same_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n the_o same_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n which_o be_v christ_n howsoever_o in_o ceremony_n they_o be_v diverse_a from_o we_o especial_o since_o they_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o for_o the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n for_o which_o we_o be_v deliver_v to_o we_o namely_o that_o they_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o whereunto_o belong_v those_o say_n the_o lamb_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 13.8_o apoc._n 13.8_o 1._o cor._n 10.4_o heb._n 13.8_o also_o all_o do_v drink_v of_o the_o same_o rock_n and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o christ_n yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o xviii_o there_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o we_o acknowledge_v two_o sacrament_n which_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n and_o which_o have_v ever_o be_v common_a to_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n baptism_n &_o the_o lord_n supper_n of_o which_o the_o one_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o communion_n with_o jesus_n christ_n the_o other_o to_o the_o increase_n whereupon_o also_o the_o one_o be_v call_v the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n the_o other_o the_o holy_a banquett_n and_o supper_n xix_o error_n wherefore_o we_o can_v allow_v of_o those_o who_o will_v have_v sacrament_n to_o be_v there_o where_o no_o word_n be_v hear_v but_o only_o the_o element_n see_v nor_o those_o which_o distinguish_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o sacrament_n but_o will_v have_v it_o come_v into_o the_o mouth_n aswell_o
as_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n whenas_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v that_o which_o the_o sign_n that_o be_v object_n to_o our_o sense_n make_v to_o come_v into_o our_o thought_n not_o to_o fall_v into_o our_o hand_n or_o mouth_n neither_o those_o likewise_o which_o do_v consider_v nothing_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o they_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n or_o which_o will_v have_v they_o only_a token_n or_o badge_n by_o which_o we_o be_v discern_v from_o other_o people_n or_o bare_a sign_n and_o not_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o he_o work_v mighty_o in_o we_o and_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o condemn_v they_o which_o institute_v new_a sacrament_n other_o than_o they_o which_o christ_n institute_v and_o those_o which_o tie_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o sacrament_n so_o that_o every_o one_o which_o receive_v the_o sign_n shall_v be_v say_v ever_o to_o receive_v true_o the_o thing_n itself_o chap._n xv._o of_o baptism_n beside_o that_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a we_o also_o especial_o believe_v and_o confess_v of_o baptism_n thus_o i._o baptism_n what_o it_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o baptism_n 1●_n m●t._n 28_o 1●_n first_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n wherewith_o all_o man_n which_o either_o have_v profess_v true_a repentance_n of_o their_o fin_n do_v also_o profess_v faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o in_o god_n the_o father_n 7.14_o cor._n 7.14_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o at_o least_o be_v believe_v to_o appertain_v unto_o the_o covenant_n 6.19_o act._n 19.5_o 1._o cor._n 6.19_o through_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n but_o especial_o they_o which_o true_o do_v belong_v unto_o the_o covenant_n as_o be_v now_o incorporate_v into_o christ_n be_v seal_v by_o he_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o their_o own_o man_n but_o he_o by_o who_o they_o be_v call_v into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o consequent_o into_o one_o body_n with_o he_o and_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o into_o participation_n of_o all_o spiritual_a &_o heavenly_a good_a thing_n 1.4_o eph._n 1.12_o eph._n 5.26_o apoc._n 5_o tit._n 3.5_o rom._n 6.4_o mar._n 1.4_o and_o be_v cleanse_v by_o this_o baptism_n as_o the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n from_o all_o their_o sin_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o bury_v into_o the_o death_n with_o christ_n that_o as_o he_o rise_v from_o death_n by_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o father_n so_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n whereupon_o it_o have_v be_v usual_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o repentance_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n the_o wash_n away_o of_o sin_n the_o sacrament_n of_o new_a life_n ii_o the_o virtue_n of_o baptism_n take_v place_n only_o in_o the_o elect_a and_o they_o only_o be_v baptize_v with_o water_n and_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o though_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o baptism_n and_o be_v true_o attribute_v unto_o it_o as_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n instrument_n to_o work_v these_o thing_n and_o that_o therefore_o all_o which_o be_v baptize_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v make_v and_o to_o be_v such_o sacramental_o yet_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o indeed_o and_o real_o perform_v but_o only_o in_o the_o elect_a which_o be_v endue_v with_o christ_n spirit_n since_o they_o only_o do_v believe_v right_o and_o do_v true_o belong_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o mystical_a body_n and_o therefore_o that_o all_o be_v baptize_v indeed_o with_o water_n but_o the_o elect_n only_o with_o the_o spirit_n and_o all_o do_v receive_v the_o sign_n but_o not_o all_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v &_o offer_v by_o baptism_n but_o only_o the_o elect_a iii_o of_o what_o part_n the_o whole_a sacrament_n of_o baptism_n consist_v and_o we_o believe_v that_o unto_o the_o make_n of_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n of_o baptism_n those_o two_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a which_o christ_n institute_v namely_o the_o simple_a element_n of_o water_n wherewith_o the_o party_n be_v wash_v either_o by_o dip_v in_o or_o by_o sprinkle_v upon_o and_o that_o form_n of_o word_n wherewith_o christ_n teach_v they_o to_o baptize_v that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nether_a do_v the_o apostle_n as_o we_o be_v persuade_v use_v any_o form_n of_o word_n or_o add_v any_o thing_n else_o unto_o the_o water_n iv_o the_o young_a infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o be_v baptize_v we_o believe_v with_o the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n that_o unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v not_o only_o they_o that_o be_v of_o discretion_n which_o have_v profess_v repentance_n of_o their_o sin_n do_v also_o profess_v faith_n in_o christ_n but_o also_o the_o young_a child_n of_o such_o since_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o covenant_n 7.14_o 1._o cor._n 7.14_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v holy_a especial_o see_v god_n have_v no_o where_o alter_v that_o commandment_n which_o he_o give_v to_o abraham_n for_o the_o mark_v of_o all_o with_o the_o figne_n of_o the_o covenant_n even_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a 19.14_o mat._n 19.14_o nay_o he_o say_v suffer_v little_a child_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o for_o of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n v._o how_o far_o forth_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o needful_a to_o every_o one_o to_o salvation_n we_o believe_v that_o baptism_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o a_o sacrament_n institute_v of_o christ_n and_o which_o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o so_o that_o where_o it_o be_v not_o use_v if_o it_o may_v be_v use_v there_o we_o acknowledge_v no_o church_n and_o we_o think_v it_o so_o necessary_a unto_o every_o one_o to_o salvation_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o if_o one_o die_v not_o wash_v with_o the_o water_n for_o defect_n or_o want_n of_o a_o minister_n and_o not_o upon_o contempt_n we_o believe_v he_o be_v not_o therefore_o condemn_v or_o wrap_v in_o eternal_a destruction_n for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v therefore_o save_v because_o they_o be_v holy_a and_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o man_n grow_v be_v save_v because_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o true_a faith_n which_o indeed_o can_v suffer_v no_o contempt_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n vi_o baptism_n once_o right_o receive_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v again_o furthermore_o we_o believe_v that_o as_o circumcision_n be_v do_v only_o once_o in_o the_o flesh_n so_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n which_o succeed_v circumcision_n 2._o col._n 2._o be_v once_o right_o and_o lawful_o receive_v ought_v not_o again_o to_o be_v repeat_v we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v right_o and_o lawful_o administer_v when_o first_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o true_a god_n christ_n and_o his_o office_n go_v before_o according_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o then_o the_o party_n be_v baptize_v with_o water_n and_o that_o of_o a_o lawful_a minister_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 6.4_o rom._n 6.4_o for_o christ_n also_o once_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o death_n and_o be_v bury_v with_o he_o by_o baptism_n 19.5_o act._n 19.5_o neither_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n ever_o do_v rebaptize_v any_o except_o those_o which_o paul_n do_v baptize_v who_o have_v not_o be_v right_o baptize_v vii_o the_o virtue_n of_o baptism_n be_v perpetual_a now_o although_o we_o come_v but_o once_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n yet_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o be_v perpetual_a which_o virtue_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o very_a plant_n into_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o benefit_n the_o wash_n away_o of_o sin_n and_o regeneration_n which_o daily_o more_o and_o more_o be_v make_v perfect_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v 5.26.27_o eph._n 5.26.27_o that_o he_o cleanse_v the_o church_n by_o wash_v of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n without_o spott_n or_o wrinkle_n 1.7_o 1._o joh._n 1.7_o and_o his_o blood_n cleanse_v daily_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o therefore_o we_o think_v &_o believe_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v content_n with_o once_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n ought_v daily_o to_o be_v occupy_v in_o
therefore_o we_o can_v without_o sacrilege_n affirm_v that_o it_o pass_v proper_o &_o that_o by_o the_o mouth_n into_o our_o body_n and_o to_o what_o end_n also_o as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n be_v give_v without_o wine_n &_o the_o wine_n without_o bread_n so_o in_o the_o supper_n the_o body_n be_v give_v without_o blood_n and_o the_o blood_n several_o without_o the_o body_n but_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o these_o his_o own_o substance_n as_o they_o be_v proper_o in_o heaven_n do_v not_o pass_v through_o our_o mouth_n but_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o a_o faithful_a remembrance_n effectual_o stir_v up_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o this_o do_v the_o lord_n himself_o require_v say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o in_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o for_o in_o speak_v thus_o he_o require_v in_o they_o faith_n whereby_o they_o may_v believe_v this_o and_o believe_v may_v eat_v that_o be_v may_v apply_v it_o unto_o themselves_o for_o the_o food_n and_o life_n of_o their_o soul_n wherefore_o we_o hold_v assure_o that_o they_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n true_o and_o not_o by_o a_o imagination_n who_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o death_n for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o their_o sin_n do_v with_o a_o faithful_a mind_n embrace_v the_o same_o for_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n &_o apply_v it_o unto_o themselves_o and_o they_o which_o thus_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o dead_a we_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o be_v more_o and_o more_o join_v to_o the_o now_o live_v &_o quicken_a body_n of_o he_o according_a to_o his_o own_o promise_n 6.56_o joh._n 6.56_o who_o first_o say_v he_o which_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o afterward_o add_v abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o xii_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o corporal_a eat_n to_o be_v reject_v as_o vain_a and_o unproffitable_a moreover_o since_o this_o manner_n of_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n namely_o by_o faith_n be_v both_o sure_a and_o profitable_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o other_o namely_o of_o eat_v it_o with_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o admit_v that_o somewhat_o may_v probable_o be_v allege_v for_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a nor_o can_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o profit_n the_o soul_n but_o bring_v with_o it_o into_o the_o church_n many_o mischief_n monstrous_a heresy_n idolatry_n stir_n schism_n dissolution_n of_o congregation_n yea_o make_v christian_n religion_n to_o be_v a_o scorn_n and_o derision_n to_o infidel_n we_o therefore_o believe_v that_o piety_n will_v all_o of_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o that_o kind_n of_o eat_v which_o in_o the_o supper_n be_v make_v by_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n we_o shall_v not_o regard_v the_o other_o kind_n but_o bid_v it_o farewell_n we_o shall_v reverent_o embrace_v brotherly_a charity_n and_o peace_n to_o which_o end_n also_o the_o supper_n be_v institute_v nether_a indeed_o can_v the_o use_n of_o those_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v suffer_v in_o any_o other_o sense_n then_o in_o this_o as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v that_o what_o we_o understand_v by_o hear_v the_o word_n with_o our_o ear_n the_o same_o we_o learn_v by_o our_o ear_n but_o to_o bring_v in_o phrase_n not_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v not_o only_o unprofitable_a but_o also_o pernicious_a &_o hurtful_a we_o think_v it_o altogether_o unlawful_a xiii_o that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n but_o it_o be_v spiritual_a now_o by_o this_o which_o we_o have_v say_v both_o of_o the_o true_a union_n and_o the_o true_a eat_n it_o may_v easy_o be_v see_v what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v of_o the_o true_a presence_n we_o hold_v therefore_o that_o if_o we_o be_v true_o and_o indeed_o unite_v with_o christ_n &_o so_o with_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o if_o we_o true_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n then_o the_o same_o christ_n not_o only_o in_o his_o deity_n but_o also_o in_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v present_a unto_o they_o that_o be_v unite_v unto_o he_o and_o do_v ear_n his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o present_a to_o thou_o then_o that_o which_o thou_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o to_o which_o thou_o in_o thy_o own_o substance_n be_v couple_v and_o from_o which_o as_o from_o thy_o head_n life_n and_o motion_n be_v impart_v to_o thou_o as_o into_o a_o member_n fourteen_o such_o as_o the_o union_n and_o eat_n be_v such_o be_v the_o presence_n namely_o spiritual_a but_o as_o both_o the_o union_n and_o the_o eat_a be_v make_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o by_o faith_n so_o also_o we_o believe_v and_o have_v be_v teach_v that_o the_o presence_n be_v no_o other_o than_o spiritual_a and_o be_v in_o man_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n &_o with_o faith_n and_o therefore_o that_o this_o kind_n of_o presence_n can_v be_v let_v by_o any_o distance_n of_o place_n though_o never_o so_o great_a xv._o a_o thing_n be_v present_a or_o absent_a so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o be_v perceive_v or_o not_o perceive_v for_o neither_o the_o nearness_n nor_o the_o farnesse_n of_o the_o place_n make_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v present_a or_o absent_a but_o the_o participation_n or_o not_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o sun_n though_o it_o be_v very_o far_o distant_a from_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v present_a and_o it_o be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v in_o our_o eye_n when_o as_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o again_o it_o be_v absent_a when_o as_o either_o overshadow_a with_o cloud_n 10._o aug._n ad_fw-la vol._n epi._n 3._o col._n 10._o or_o go_v into_o the_o other_o hemisphere_n we_o can_v see_v it_o to_o a_o man_n stark_o blind_a the_o light_n thereof_o be_v never_o present_a though_o it_o shine_v even_o into_o his_o eye_n as_o likewise_o excellent_a music_n to_o one_o that_o be_v deaf_a or_o the_o sweetness_n of_o a_o oration_n to_o a_o unlearned_a man_n god_n be_v also_o say_v to_o be_v far_o from_o the_o ungodlie_a because_o he_o be_v not_o perceive_v of_o they_o by_o faith_n whenas_o notwithstanding_o in_o his_o own_o essence_n he_o be_v not_o far_o from_o any_o of_o us._n for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o be_v move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v therefore_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o a_o thing_n be_v perceive_v or_o not_o perceive_v of_o we_o either_o by_o the_o natural_a part_n or_o by_o the_o sense_n or_o by_o the_o mind_n or_o any_o other_o way_n so_o far_o also_o be_v it_o say_v to_o be_v present_a or_o absent_a xvi_o what_o kind_n of_o presence_n we_o deny_v and_o what_o kind_n we_o grant_v wherefore_o albeit_o we_o disallow_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v or_o waste_v into_o nothing_o there_o shall_v succeed_v in_o place_n thereof_o the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o so_o to_o be_v present_a unto_o we_o that_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n shall_v lie_v hide_v the_o true_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o albeit_o we_o also_o deny_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o and_o in_o it_o own_o substance_n present_a in_o the_o bread_n which_o bread_n have_v no_o other_o union_n with_o his_o flesh_n but_o the_o sacramental_a union_n which_o be_v make_v by_o a_o mystical_a relation_n and_o albeit_o we_o also_o gainsaye_v that_o he_o be_v present_a to_o the_o wicked_a which_o have_v not_o that_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o he_o nor_o can_v be_v say_v true_o to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o albeit_o we_o do_v not_o grant_v such_o a_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n namely_o that_o he_o be_v now_o present_a with_o the_o faithful_a upon_o earth_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o supper_n visible_o to_o be_v see_v of_o they_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o first_o supper_n present_a at_o the_o table_n visible_o to_o be_v see_v of_o his_o apostle_n for_o this_o do_v plain_o disagree_v not_o only_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o from_o the_o scripture_n itself_o but_o do_v grant_v that_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o only_o in_o a_o unuisible_a manner_n and_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v perceave_v by_o our_o sense_n last_o albeit_o we_o detest_v that_o presence_n wherein_o some_o do_v fain_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n real_o &_o in_o it_o own_o substance_n to_o be_v every_o where_o yet_o we_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o presence_n as_o be_v no_o less_o essential_a for_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v true_o present_a unto_o we_o see_v we_o be_v indeed_o make_v partaker_n of_o they_o then_o spiritual_a for_o the_o manner_n wherein_o
they_o be_v make_v present_a and_o be_v true_o communicate_v unto_o us._n yea_o we_o also_o do_v little_a doubt_n but_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o the_o wine_n but_o after_o no_o other_o sort_n then_o as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v that_o what_o so_o be_v declare_v and_o offer_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o same_o be_v present_a and_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o word_n since_o even_o the_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a word_n and_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v be_v in_o some_o sort_n in_o the_o sign_n thereof_o and_o be_v give_v with_o it_o xvii_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n depend_v not_o upon_o ubiquity_n but_o upon_o christ_n word_n whereupon_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n depend_v not_o upon_o ubiquity_n or_o be_v in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o as_o some_o have_v dream_v but_o upon_o the_o very_a word_n of_o christ_n work_v in_o we_o to_o who_o he_o be_v make_v present_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v eat_v the_o bread_n receive_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v not_o hear_v and_o by_o faith_n understand_v those_o his_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n doubtless_o they_o have_v then_o nether_a receive_v nor_o eat_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o bread_n so_o that_o to_o the_o confirm_v of_o their_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o bread_n that_o monstrous_a opinion_n and_o odious_a to_o god_n and_o his_o whole_a church_n concern_v ubiquity_n can_v nothing_o help_v they_o draw_v indeed_o out_o of_o their_o scholastical_a distinction_n but_o yet_o clean_o against_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o and_o this_o be_v our_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a communion_n of_o the_o true_a eat_n and_o of_o the_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n xviii_o what_o rite_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n concern_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n we_o say_v only_o this_o that_o those_o be_v principal_o to_o be_v allow_v of_o which_o come_v near_a to_o the_o apostolical_a simplicity_n chap._n xvii_o of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n i._o to_o the_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o therefore_o to_o the_o participation_n of_o salvation_n faith_n be_v most_o necessary_a to_o the_o engraft_v into_o christ_n &_o the_o help_a forward_o this_o communion_n the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v the_o outward_a instrument_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o sacrament_n but_o unless_o the_o same_o spirit_n do_v also_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o may_v embrace_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n offer_v unto_o we_o we_o hold_v that_o those_o instrument_n can_v profitt_a we_o nothing_o to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o the_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o participation_n of_o all_o his_o benefit_n faith_n be_v most_o necessary_a ii_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o faith_n now_o by_o the_o name_n of_o faith_n we_o understand_v not_o a_o certain_a human_a opinion_n or_o persuasion_n concern_v god_n and_o christ_n but_o a_o gift_n of_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o prudence_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o with_o a_o sincere_a firm_a and_o constant_a mind_n do_v assent_v to_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n speak_v therein_o but_o especial_o to_o the_o gospel_n which_o bring_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o redemption_n purchase_v by_o christ_n and_o do_v true_o understand_v in_o it_o god_n himself_o his_o will_n christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n yea_o we_o certain_o know_v they_o love_o embrace_v they_o and_o call_v upon_o god_n with_o a_o assure_a trust_n in_o his_o mercy_n and_o in_o his_o unspeakable_a love_n towards_o we_o &_o we_o be_v encourage_v to_o love_v he_o again_o and_o also_o provoke_v to_o the_o performance_n of_o a_o faithful_a obedience_n to_o he_o and_o to_o glorify_v he_o in_o good_a work_n and_o duty_n of_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o our_o life_n iii_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n for_o neither_o be_v true_a faith_n a_o property_n of_o man_n wit_n but_o a_o gift_n of_o god_n 11._o phil._n 1.29_o tit._n 1.1_o act._n 13.45_o heb._n 11._o neither_o be_v it_o give_v to_o all_o but_o to_o the_o elect_a neither_o be_v it_o a_o uncertain_a and_o waver_a opinion_n of_o thing_n promise_v but_o a_o substance_n and_o settle_a assurance_n of_o thing_n promise_v &_o a_o assure_a take_v hold_n on_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v 10.17_o rom._n 10.17_o neither_o do_v it_o grow_v from_o the_o hear_n of_o human_a reason_n but_o be_v conceive_v by_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o only_o speak_v and_o promise_v neither_o be_v it_o a_o hypocritical_a and_o dissemble_a 13.21_o 1._o tim._n 1.5_o mat._n 13.21_o but_o a_o sincere_a assent_n thereunto_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o temporal_a persuasion_n but_o a_o constant_a and_o perpetual_a though_o many_o time_n we_o weaken_v the_o same_o by_o our_o sin_n 1.8_o eph._n 1.8_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o blind_a or_o fond_a matter_n but_o a_o exceed_o great_a wisdom_n whereby_o we_o know_v god_n and_o christ_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o a_o christian_n prudence_n which_o cause_v we_o not_o to_o abuse_v that_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o to_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o true_a use_n 21.20_o gal._n 5.6_o ja._n 21.20_o neither_o last_o be_v it_o a_o dead_a thing_n but_o lively_a and_o work_v through_o charity_n iv_o faith_n have_v she_o increase_v and_o albeit_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o elect_a do_v never_o utter_o decay_v but_o always_o live_v yet_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o always_o so_o perfect_a and_o complete_a but_o it_o have_v daily_o need_v of_o increase_n for_o which_o both_o the_o apostle_n pray_v 1.17.18_o luc._n 17.5_o eph._n 1.17.18_o and_o we_o confess_v that_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n v._o the_o confession_n of_o the_o truth_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n we_o also_o believe_v that_o true_a faith_n can_v never_o when_o need_n be_v want_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o the_o truth_n 10.10_o rom._n 10.10_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n man_n confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o we_o condemn_v the_o libertine_n and_o other_o of_o their_o crew_n that_o think_v it_o be_v in_o their_o own_o choice_n to_o dissemble_v the_o truth_n in_o all_o place_n and_o among_o all_o people_n and_o to_o apply_v themselves_o unto_o any_o religion_n vi_o hope_n spring_v of_o faith_n we_o also_o believe_v that_o hope_n spring_v of_o faith_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o hope_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o 11.1_o heb._n 11.1_o for_o therefore_o do_v we_o hope_v for_o the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v &_o assure_o look_v for_o they_o through_o patience_n because_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n promise_n vii_o what_o hope_n be_v now_o hope_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o do_v as_o certain_o look_v for_o as_o we_o assure_o believe_v through_o patience_n in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n &_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n alone_o 8.24_o rom._n 8.24_o those_o promise_v good_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o either_o have_v or_o see_v viii_o the_o assurance_n of_o hope_n whence_o it_o be_v for_o christian_a man_n hope_n as_o it_o do_v not_o spring_n of_o any_o human_a promise_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o cherish_v by_o human_a merit_n nor_o rely_v thereupon_o but_o be_v manifold_o confirm_v and_o seal_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o sole_a truth_n of_o god_n promise_n be_v also_o declare_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o mighty_a &_o all-working_a power_n of_o the_o same_o god_n alone_o which_o promise_v but_o especial_o be_v show_v open_o in_o christ_n at_o such_o time_n as_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o make_v he_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n 1.20_o eph._n 1.20_o and_o last_o be_v fix_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o only_a obedience_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o we_o believe_v and_o in_o who_o we_o hope_v it_o do_v assure_o and_o steadfast_o look_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o our_o salvation_n even_o the_o resurrection_n from_o death_n the_o come_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o great_a god_n and_o of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o full_a possession_n
of_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n ix_o charity_n also_o do_v spring_n of_o faith_n we_o believe_v also_o that_o of_o true_a faith_n spring_v true_a charity_n by_o which_o it_o work_v and_o by_o which_o it_o show_v how_o forcible_a it_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 4.3_o gal._n 5.6_o 1._o joh._n 4.3_o that_o the_o faith_n avail_v much_o in_o christ_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o john_n affirm_v that_o he_o which_o love_v not_o 2.15.16_o ja._n 2.15.16_o have_v not_o know_v god_n therefore_o we_o acknowledge_v not_o they_o for_o brethren_n which_o boast_v of_o faith_n when_o they_o have_v not_o charity_n x._o charity_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o charity_n be_v the_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n 4.18_o 1._o joh._n 4.18_o whereby_o we_o be_v affection_a towards_o god_n the_o father_n and_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n to_o love_v they_o again_o &_o to_o glorify_v they_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o incline_v &_o make_v prove_v to_o good_a will_n and_o love_a kindness_n aswell_o towards_o all_o man_n yea_o even_o our_o enemy_n as_o especial_o towards_o the_o saint_n and_o faithful_a therefore_o we_o disallow_v they_o which_o say_v that_o man_n can_v of_o his_o own_o natural_a power_n love_n god_n above_o all_o thing_n for_o love_n come_v of_o god_n 4.7_o 1._o joh._n 4.7_o say_v john_n xi_o testimony_n of_o true_a charity_n neither_o do_v we_o think_v that_o to_o be_v true_a and_o christian_n charity_n which_o come_v not_o to_o that_o nature_n which_o the_o apostle_n describe_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n chap._n thirteen_o 4.5.6.7_o ver_fw-la 4.5.6.7_o namely_o that_o it_o suffer_v long_o be_v bountiful_a envy_v not_o do_v not_o boast_v itself_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o do_v no_o uncomely_a thing_n seek_v not_o her_o own_o thing_n be_v not_o provoke_v to_o anger_n think_v not_o evil_a rejoice_v not_o in_o iniquity_n but_o rejoice_v in_o the_o truth_n suffer_v all_o thing_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v xii_o by_o charity_n the_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n be_v nourish_v we_o believe_v that_o by_o true_a charity_n the_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o church_n be_v exceed_o cherish_v increase_v and_o preserve_v in_o as_o much_o as_o love_n do_v unite_v between_o themselves_o the_o person_n love_v and_o belove_a as_o john_n say_v he_o which_o abide_v in_o love_n abide_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o he_o chap._n xviii_o of_o repentance_n although_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n repentance_n justification_n the_o study_n of_o good_a work_n and_o of_o a_o godly_a life_n can_v indeed_o be_v separate_v from_o one_o another_o yet_o in_o as_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o depend_v on_o another_o they_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o each_o of_o they_o severallie_o to_o be_v consider_v of_o and_o to_o be_v see_v what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o work_v and_o therefore_o we_o think_v good_a brief_o to_o declare_v what_o we_o think_v of_o they_o every_o one_o and_o first_o of_o repentance_n the_o continual_a and_o inseparable_a companion_n of_o faith_n for_o albeit_o it_o be_v daily_o make_v more_o perfect_a after_o justification_n yet_o because_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v without_o repentance_n and_o the_o beginning_n thereof_o go_v before_o justification_n therefore_o we_o have_v purpose_v in_o this_o first_o place_n to_o declare_v what_o our_o belief_n be_v concern_v the_o same_o i._o to_o justification_n and_o therefore_o to_o the_o communion_n with_o christ_n repentance_n be_v necessary_a we_o believe_v that_o to_o the_o true_a participation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n and_o so_o to_o the_o communion_n with_o christ_n repentance_n be_v very_o needful_a whereby_o be_v turn_v from_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o world_n by_o change_v our_o mind_n &_o will_n we_o be_v turn_v to_o god_n and_o be_v join_v unto_o he_o and_o so_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o by_o he_o &_o be_v clothe_v with_o his_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n for_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o john_n baptist_n yea_o that_o christ_n himself_o preach_v 14.15_o mar._n 14.15_o be_v repentance_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o except_o say_v christ_n you_o repent_v 13.3.5_o luc._n 13.3.5_o you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v ii_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o repentance_n by_o the_o name_n of_o repentance_n we_o understand_v two_o thing_n especial_o first_o a_o earnest_a grief_n &_o a_o true_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n commit_v against_o god_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o punishment_n due_a to_o sin_n as_o for_o that_o we_o have_v offend_v god_n himself_o our_o chief_a good_a yea_o our_o maker_n and_o love_a father_n and_o then_o a_o unfeigned_a change_v of_o our_o mind_n heart_n will_n and_o intent_n and_o so_o of_o our_o whole_a life_n for_o this_o part_n which_o christ_n call_v proper_o repentance_n and_o the_o prophet_n a_o turn_n to_o god_n 7.10_o 2._o cor._n 7.10_o and_o the_o circumcision_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o apostle_n teach_v to_o come_v of_o the_o former_a join_v both_o part_n together_o where_o he_o say_v godly_a sorrow_n cause_v repentance_n unto_o salvation_n iii_o repentance_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n we_o believe_v that_o repentance_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n come_v from_o his_o mere_a grace_n &_o not_o due_a to_o any_o of_o our_o desert_n or_o endeavour_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2.25_o 2._o tim_n 2.25_o if_o god_n at_o any_o time_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v the_o truth_n &_o may_v come_v to_o amendment_n out_o of_o that_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n 31.18_o jer._n 31.18_o and_o the_o prophet_n say_v turn_v i_o o_o lord_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v turn_v iv_o to_o stir_v up_o repentance_n in_o we_o god_n use_v ordinary_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o the_o hear_n of_o both_o be_v most_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n god_n accustome_v for_o the_o stir_v up_o of_o repentance_n in_o we_o to_o use_v ordinary_o aswell_o the_o declaration_n of_o his_o law_n which_o discover_v our_o sin_n and_o lay_v open_a god_n wrath_n as_o also_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o show_v remission_n of_o sin_n &_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n even_o as_o it_o manifest_o appear_v to_o every_o godly_a man_n which_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o we_o judge_v the_o declaration_n and_o hear_n of_o they_o both_o to_o be_v very_o needful_a in_o the_o church_n v._o a_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n every_o where_o and_o always_o necessary_a to_o all_o of_o year_n of_o discretion_n the_o sum_n of_o our_o faith_n concern_v repentance_n necessary_a every_o where_n and_o at_o all_o time_n to_o all_o that_o be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n be_v this_o that_o repentance_n be_v a_o change_v of_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n stir_v up_o in_o we_o through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o word_n both_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n wherein_o we_o grieve_v from_o our_o heart_n we_o detest_v we_o lament_v we_o loath_a and_o bewail_v and_o confess_v before_o god_n all_o our_o sin_n &_o even_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n as_o thing_n utter_o repugnant_a as_o the_o law_n teach_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n &_o to_o the_o cleanse_v whereof_o the_o death_n of_o god_n own_o son_n as_o the_o gospel_n preach_v be_v needful_a and_o do_v humble_o pray_v and_o entreat_v for_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o the_o same_o and_o do_v earnest_o resolve_v upon_o amendment_n of_o our_o life_n and_o on_o a_o continual_a study_n and_o care_n of_o innocence_n and_o christian_n virtue_n and_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o the_o same_o diligent_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n vi_o that_o the_o vulgar_a or_o usual_a part_n of_o poenitencie_n as_o contrition_n confession_n of_o sin_n and_o satisfaction_n be_v not_o simple_o condemn_v concern_v the_o part_n of_o repentance_n beside_o those_o which_o be_v already_o declare_v we_o have_v not_o much_o to_o speak_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o same_o do_v whole_o and_o chief_o consist_v in_o a_o earnest_a mortification_n of_o the_o old_a man_n and_o a_o quicken_a of_o the_o new_a whereof_o the_o former_a take_v the_o force_n from_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o latter_a from_o his_o resurrection_n the_o holy_a ghost_n impart_v they_o both_o unto_o us._n meanwhile_o we_o do_v not_o simple_o disallow_v that_o same_o distinction_n receive_v and_o long_o hold_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o part_n of_o repentance_n into_o contrition_n confession_n of_o sin_n &_o satisfaction_n namely_o if_o it_o be_v examine_v
citizen_n and_o such_o other_o like_o name_n iv_o the_o church_n consist_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a already_o incorporate_a into_o christ_n now_o that_o these_o many_o of_o who_o the_o church_n consist_v be_v none_o but_o elect_v already_o ingraft_v into_o christ_n and_o endue_v with_o christ_n holiness_n the_o same_o scripture_n do_v plentiful_o teach_v both_o in_o other_o place_n &_o chief_o to_o the_o ephesian_n where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o member_n thereof_o say_v 1_o eph._n 1_o we_o be_v all_o choose_v in_o christ_n and_o have_v redemption_n in_o he_o and_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n that_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n be_v his_o body_n it_o be_v therefore_o such_o a_o body_n whereof_o all_o the_o member_n be_v join_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n both_o to_o the_o head_n christ_n &_o among_o themselves_o and_o be_v quicken_v or_o have_v life_n from_o the_o head_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o his_o holiness_n so_o that_o this_o whole_a body_n be_v true_o holy_a and_o call_v the_o holy_a church_n v._o the_o holy_a angel_n be_v not_o exclude_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o from_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n do_v we_o exclude_v the_o angel_n both_o because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v plain_o of_o the_o church_n comprehend_v the_o angel_n therein_o and_o also_o because_o they_o with_o we_o be_v likewise_o gather_v into_o our_o body_n 229_o heb._n 12.22_o eph._n 1.10_o col._n 2.10_o apo._n 229_o under_o one_o and_o the_o same_o head_n christ_n and_o christ_n be_v express_o call_v of_o the_o apostle_n the_o head_n of_o the_o angel_n yea_o and_o also_o because_o they_o call_v themselves_o our_o fellow_n servant_n and_o have_v the_o sane_a father_n with_o we_o and_o serve_v the_o same_o god_n and_o we_o all_o of_o we_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o together_o in_o the_o same_o city_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n last_o they_o be_v also_o saint_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o all_o saint_n vi_o the_o reprobate_a hypocrite_n though_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n so_o we_o right_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o reprobate_a hypocrite_n though_o they_o dwell_v in_o the_o church_n and_o live_v among_o the_o saint_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o be_v not_o true_o join_v to_o the_o head_n christ_n nor_o endue_v with_o his_o spirit_n and_o consequent_o not_o true_o saint_n as_o the_o apostle_n john_n say_v 2.19_o 1._o joh._n 2.19_o of_o certain_a hypocrite_n they_o be_v go_v out_o from_o we_o as_o filth_n from_o the_o body_n but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o have_v continue_v with_o us._n they_o therefore_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n which_o at_o last_o do_v fall_v from_o christ_n and_o keep_v not_o that_o perpetual_a communion_n with_o christ_n and_o with_o all_o his_o saint_n howsoever_o great_a and_o rare_a man_n they_o seem_v in_o the_o church_n for_o a_o time_n yea_o and_o hold_v the_o government_n over_o the_o christian_n common_a wealth_n and_o rule_v over_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o they_o be_v member_n of_o satan_n not_o of_o christ_n whosoever_o have_v the_o spirit_n not_o of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n vii_o that_o there_o ever_o be_v and_o be_v one_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o confess_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v and_o be_v one_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n 4.4.5.6_o eph._n 4.4.5.6_o because_o there_o ever_o be_v &_o be_v one_o only_a body_n to_o which_o christ_n be_v give_v of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v the_o head_n one_o only_a spirit_n by_o which_o all_o the_o member_n be_v knit_v unto_o the_o body_n only_o one_o god_n to_o the_o serve_v of_o who_o and_o glorify_v for_o ever_o we_o be_v all_o choose_a and_o call_v one_o only_a faith_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a believer_n one_o salvation_n &_o last_o one_o heavenly_a inheritance_n of_o all_o to_o which_o purpose_n also_o christ_n ever_o call_v the_o church_n one_o &_o one_o flock_n wherefore_o we_o make_v that_o church_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n no_o other_o but_o the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v now_o and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o we_o call_v it_o one_o of_o all_o time_n of_o all_o place_n and_o all_o person_n join_v with_o christ_n &_o consequent_o one_o communion_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n from_o which_o they_o that_o make_v a_o utter_a sever_n and_o departure_n we_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o this_o body_n viii_o of_o the_o christian_n church_n there_o be_v one_o only_a head_n jesus_n christ_n hereupon_o we_o be_v strengthen_v in_o this_o belief_n that_o since_o there_o be_v one_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o body_n there_o ever_o be_v and_o be_v yet_o therefore_o one_o only_a head_n of_o it_o by_o this_o name_n head_n we_o mean_v he_o which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o world_n beginning_n to_o that_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o it_o that_o he_o may_v redeem_v it_o that_o he_o may_v join_v it_o to_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v quicken_v it_o that_o he_o may_v deck_v it_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o wisdom_n that_o he_o may_v kindle_v it_o with_o the_o fire_n of_o heavenly_a love_n that_o he_o may_v effectual_o move_v it_o to_o all_o good_a affection_n and_o good_a work_n that_o he_o may_v evermore_o govern_v it_o &_o keep_v it_o for_o that_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a duty_n of_o the_o head_n towards_o the_o whole_a body_n beside_o daily_a experience_n in_o nature_n we_o learn_v also_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o who_o can_v perform_v have_v and_o will_v perform_v this_o to_o the_o church_n we_o acknowledge_v none_o other_o beside_o christ_n jesus_n mean_v while_o not_o deny_v but_o there_o may_v be_v one_o head_n of_o all_o hypocrite_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o of_o the_o hypocritical_a church_n since_o the_o prophet_n foretell_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v the_o same_o 1.18_o eph._n 1.22_o &_o 4.15_o &_o 5.23_o col._n 1.18_o but_o that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a head_n jesus_n christ_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n we_o believe_v and_o confess_v with_o the_o holy_a apostle_n ix_o this_o church_n be_v true_o holy_a whereupon_o it_o follow_v this_o church_n therefore_o to_o be_v true_o holy_a because_o it_o have_v a_o head_n that_o be_v most_o holy_a &_o make_v it_o holy_a because_o no_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o it_o because_o from_o he_o it_o draw_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n and_o because_o whatsoever_o holiness_n be_v in_o the_o head_n that_o be_v whole_o impute_v to_o every_o member_n x._o it_o be_v also_o true_o catholic_a we_o also_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v true_o catholic_a that_o be_v universal_a because_o the_o head_n thereof_o be_v also_o catholic_a and_o everlasting_a at_o all_o time_n even_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n thereof_o join_v unto_o himself_o member_n out_o of_o all_o place_n from_o all_o kind_n of_o man_n and_o all_o nation_n and_o govern_v and_o preserve_v they_o to_o himself_o for_o eternal_a blessedness_n xi_o this_o one_o church_n be_v partly_o in_o heaven_n triumphant_a and_o partly_o on_o earth_n militant_a but_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o church_n though_o it_o be_v and_o ever_o be_v one_o yet_o it_o be_v so_o distinct_a that_o one_o part_n be_v triumphant_a in_o heaven_n with_o christ_n already_o raise_v from_o death_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n another_o part_n on_o earth_n fight_v still_o with_o flesh_n &_o blood_n with_o the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n whereupon_o arise_v that_o usual_a distinction_n among_o all_o the_o godly_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a church_n chap._n xxiv_o of_o the_o militant_a church_n albeit_o by_o this_o which_o we_o have_v confess_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n every_o one_o may_v easy_o perceive_v what_o we_o believe_v particular_o of_o the_o militant_a church_n yet_o that_o our_o faith_n may_v more_o clear_o &_o plain_o be_v know_v we_o have_v purpose_v to_o declare_v our_o opinion_n of_o this_o church_n several_o partly_o refer_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o whole_a in_o a_o brief_a rehearsal_n to_o this_o and_o partly_o adjoin_v the_o property_n of_o this_o peouliarly_a i._o a_o description_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n we_o therefore_o believe_v 1.4_o eph._n 1.4_o
that_o the_o militant_a church_n be_v the_o company_n of_o man_n choose_v in_o christ_n before_o the_o world_n creation_n 18.20_o mar._n 28.19_o mar._n 16.15_o rom._n 10.14_o eph._n 1.22_o mat._n 18.20_o which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o their_o time_n from_o the_o world_n to_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o gather_v together_o into_o one_o body_n under_o one_o head_n christ_n and_o so_o make_v true_o just_a and_o holy_a wheresoever_o they_o be_v 13.4_o joh._n 10_o 27_o &_o 13.4_o and_o whether_o few_o or_o many_o do_v profess_v from_o their_o heart_n &_o soul_n the_o same_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o in_o christ_n the_o same_o hope_n of_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n for_o the_o only_a merit_n of_o christ_n the_o obedience_n of_o the_o same_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o same_o brotherly_a love_n among_o themselves_o and_o charity_n to_o ward_n all_o man_n do_v preach_v and_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n 7_o rom._n 7_o do_v administer_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o have_v a_o great_a care_n to_o live_v sober_o right_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o world_n meanwhile_o while_o they_o remain_v in_o this_o flesh_n ever_o warrfair_v for_o christ_n and_o fight_v against_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o flesh_n 6.12_o eph._n 6.12_o and_o against_o the_o world_n either_o allure_a they_o to_o sin_n or_o persecute_v they_o for_o christ_n or_o last_o against_o the_o devil_n 13_o mat._n 13_o and_o by_o patience_n look_v for_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o eternal_a felicity_n among_o who_o also_o many_o reprobate_n &_o naughty_a hypocrite_n do_v live_v 2.19_o 1._o joh._n 2.19_o and_o profess_v the_o same_o christ_n but_o as_o they_o themselves_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o of_o the_o church_n so_o their_o wickedness_n can_v take_v away_o the_o church_n nor_o extinguish_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v we_o doubt_v 13_o mat._n 13_o but_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n the_o hypocrite_n also_o which_o be_v in_o it_o be_v contain_v since_o the_o lord_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v like_a unto_o a_o flower_n wherein_o there_o be_v corn_n and_o chafe_v to_o a_o field_n wherein_o be_v wheat_n and_o tare_n to_o a_o net_n 25.1_o mat._n 25.1_o wherein_o be_v good_a fish_n and_o bad_a to_o the_o company_n of_o ten_o virgin_n wherein_o some_o be_v wise_a and_o some_o foolish_a 16.18_o mat._n 16.18_o but_o yet_o that_o these_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o lord_n teach_v we_o when_o he_o say_v he_o will_v build_v such_o a_o church_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v 2.19_o 1._o joh._n 2.19_o and_o john_n confirm_v it_o in_o his_o epistle_n when_o he_o say_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n this_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o true_a description_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n for_o it_o have_v manifest_a testimony_n from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ii_o difference_n between_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a church_n so_o although_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n yet_o what_o great_a difference_n there_o be_v in_o each_o part_n we_o may_v easy_o understand_v for_o beside_o that_o the_o militant_a consist_v only_o of_o man_n when_o as_o the_o other_o have_v also_o the_o bless_a angel_n join_v and_o present_a we_o have_v also_o here_o need_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o discipline_n of_o manner_n which_o thing_n be_v not_o require_v in_o heaven_n likewise_o from_o that_o be_v all_o the_o wicked_a and_o hypocrite_n exclude_v in_o this_o there_o be_v ever_o ill_o mingle_v with_o good_a and_o there_o those_o heavenly_a brethren_n have_v as_o it_o be_v receive_v a_o token_n of_o freedom_n do_v triumph_n and_o rejoice_v over_o those_o vanquish_a enemy_n be_v in_o god_n presence_n and_o see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n but_o we_o must_v still_o fight_v with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o world_n with_o sin_n and_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n and_o we_o see_v through_o a_o glass_n in_o a_o dark_a speech_n as_o stranger_n to_o the_o lord_n last_o that_o be_v evermore_o one_o and_o the_o same_o that_o it_o can_v neither_o be_v divide_v into_o part_n nor_o be_v in_o hazard_n of_o any_o change_n which_o can_v certain_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o militant_a church_n iii_o so_o be_v the_o militant_a church_n one_o and_o the_o same_o &_o that_o catholic_a that_o yet_o it_o fare_v not_o ever_o after_o one_o sort_n &_o it_o may_v be_v part_v into_o diverse_a particular_a church_n we_o acknowledge_v therefore_o that_o albeit_o this_o militant_a be_v and_o have_v always_o be_v one_o and_o that_o a_o catholic_a church_n since_o it_o have_v ever_o since_o the_o world_n beginning_n and_o in_o all_o place_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o head_n christ_n who_o couple_v to_o himself_o into_o one_o body_n all_o the_o elect_a out_o of_o all_o people_n yet_o the_o same_o have_v not_o nor_o do_v ever_o fare_v or_o show_v itself_o after_o the_o same_o sort_n &_o be_v distinguish_v into_o many_o particular_a church_n as_o into_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a member_n according_a to_o the_o variety_n of_o time_n place_n and_o people_n for_o it_o be_v after_o another_o manner_n in_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n before_o sin_n and_o another_o after_o sin_n before_o the_o flood_n and_o among_o the_o patriarch_n otherwise_o under_o the_o law_n and_o otherwise_o under_o grace_n and_o otherwise_o in_o christ_n time_n among_o the_o jew_n only_o and_o otherwise_o after_o christ_n glorification_n gather_v aswell_o of_o jew_n as_o gentile_n by_o the_o apostle_n &_o that_o not_o in_o one_o place_n but_o in_o diverse_a neither_o of_o one_o people_n but_o of_o diverse_a and_o many_a neither_o observe_v always_o and_o every_o where_o the_o same_o ceremony_n in_o which_o respect_n we_o use_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o before_o &_o another_o after_o christ_n and_o that_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n this_o of_o the_o new_a &_o as_o we_o read_v they_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v they_o the_o old_a people_n and_o the_o new_a likewise_o one_o church_n be_v at_o rome_n another_o at_o corinthus_n another_o at_o ephesus_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n iv_o of_o many_o particular_a church_n consist_v one_o catholic_a church_n again_o albeit_o for_o these_o many_o and_o diverse_a respect_n already_o declare_v there_o ever_o have_v be_v and_o be_v many_o and_o diverse_a &_o particular_a church_n yet_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o substance_n there_o have_v ever_o consist_v one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n of_o they_o all_o 2.15.18_o eph._n 2.15.18_o and_o the_o same_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o holy_a one_o because_o it_o ever_o be_v and_o be_v gather_v into_o one_o body_n 4.5_o eph._n 4.5_o under_o one_o head_n by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o there_o be_v one_o faith_n of_o all_o man_n &_o one_o confession_n of_o faith_n catholic_a because_o it_o stretch_v to_o all_o time_n and_o place_n and_o consist_v of_o all_o kind_n of_o person_n &_o people_n 2.20_o eph._n 2.20_o apostolic_a because_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v lay_v jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o prophet_n ever_o since_o the_o world_n beginning_n last_o holy_a not_o because_o it_o have_v no_o sin_n but_o because_o be_v graft_v into_o christ_n and_o endue_v with_o a_o continual_a repentance_n and_o faith_n no_o sin_n be_v impute_v unto_o it_o but_o have_v obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o they_o all_o because_o also_o it_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o sanctifi_v and_o regenerate_v it_o last_o because_o the_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o it_o for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v also_o say_v to_o be_v without_o wrinkle_n 5.27_o eph._n 5.27_o namely_o in_o christ_n the_o head_n &_o spouse_n thereof_o v._o particular_a church_n how_o they_o may_v be_v know_v whether_o they_o be_v true_a church_n or_o not_o and_o hereby_o we_o believe_v every_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v discern_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n gather_v in_o the_o lord_n even_o by_o those_o thing_n whereupon_o the_o lord_n have_v will_v they_o to_o be_v build_v 20_o mat._n 28.19_o 20_o namely_o upon_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n institute_v of_o christ_n and_o the_o keep_n of_o his_o commandment_n therefore_o those_o church_n we_o acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o
christ_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v in_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v as_o the_o son_n over_o his_o own_o house_n and_o this_o house_n we_o be_v that_o be_v the_o church_n and_o in_o another_o place_n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 5.23_o eph._n 5.23_o &_o the_o same_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n ii_o christ_n order_v his_o church_n partly_o by_o himself_o and_o partly_o by_o assistance_n of_o fellow_n labourer_n but_o the_o government_n wherewith_o christ_n guide_v his_o church_n we_o know_v to_o be_v two_o fold_n one_o wherein_o he_o of_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n without_o any_o help_n or_o service_n of_o man_n 1.23_o phil._n 2.13_o eph._n 1.23_o reign_v inward_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o believer_n and_o work_v in_o they_o to_o will_n and_o to_o perform_v and_o be_v even_o all_o in_o all_o and_o move_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v good_a defend_v we_o from_o evil_a against_o satan_n the_o world_n and_o all_o our_o enemy_n the_o other_o wherein_o he_o so_o guide_v the_o church_n as_o he_o also_o vouchsafe_v to_o use_v the_o help_n and_o ministry_n of_o other_o aswell_o angel_n as_o man_n especial_o to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o angel_n the_o apostle_n speak_v 1.14_o heb._n 1.14_o they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n send_v forth_o to_o minister_v for_o their_o sake_n which_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o salvation_n 3.5.9_o 1._o cor._n 3.5.9_o and_o of_o man_n he_o say_v we_o be_v god_n minister_n by_o who_o you_o have_v believe_v for_o like_v as_o in_o a_o man_n the_o head_n of_o itself_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o live_v &_o work_v chief_o therein_o do_v so_o rule_v the_o whole_a body_n that_o it_o also_o use_v the_o help_n of_o every_o member_n to_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n so_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n do_v in_o like_a sort_n bear_v himself_o in_o the_o government_n thereof_o not_o for_o his_o own_o cause_n or_o that_o he_o need_v our_o ministry_n but_o do_v it_o for_o our_o necessity_n yea_o for_o our_o manifest_a commodity_n and_o honour_n iii_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o of_o man_n by_o the_o way_n we_o acknowledge_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o of_o man_n since_o the_o angel_n be_v not_o send_v either_o to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n or_o to_o administer_v sacrament_n but_o to_o perform_v other_o duty_n &_o those_o for_o the_o most_o part_n invisible_a neither_o come_v they_o ordinary_o always_o and_o to_o all_o but_o at_o such_o time_n and_o to_o such_o person_n as_o god_n send_v they_o but_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n be_v apparent_a and_o perpetual_a and_o pertain_v to_o every_o one_o iv_o it_o be_v most_o advise_o do_v that_o angel_n shall_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n but_o man_n and_o we_o know_v it_o be_v most_o wise_o and_o advise_o do_v of_o god_n that_o christ_n shall_v teach_v in_o his_o church_n not_o by_o angel_n but_o by_o man_n both_o because_o we_o can_v not_o more_o willing_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v inform_v familiar_o of_o our_o equal_n then_o to_o be_v teach_v of_o spirit_n of_o a_o far_o differ_a nature_n with_o a_o unaquainted_a majesty_n and_o also_o because_o we_o may_v more_o easy_o be_v deceive_v of_o satan_n false_o feign_v himself_o to_o be_v send_v of_o god_n and_o transform_v himself_o to_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o those_o sure_o in_o our_o judgement_n be_v two_o not_o the_o least_o cause_n why_o the_o son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v to_o fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n will_v be_v make_v a_o man_n and_o our_o brother_n and_o familiar_a and_o like_v unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_v only_o except_v whereto_o that_o same_o tend_v 1.1_o heb._n 4.15_o heb._n 2.12_o heb._n 1.1_o i_o will_v declare_v thy_o name_n to_o my_o brethren_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o congregation_n will_v i_o praise_v thou_o and_o that_o same_o in_o these_o last_o day_n he_o have_v speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n namely_o be_v now_o make_v man_n and_o live_v familiar_o in_o the_o church_n v._o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o man_n especial_o who_o ministry_n christ_n use_v to_o the_o government_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o although_o there_o be_v not_o one_o member_n in_o this_o whole_a great_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o christ_n use_v the_o same_o to_o some_o profit_n of_o the_o other_o member_n 12.7_o 1._o cor._n 12.7_o and_o so_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n as_o paul_n teach_v yet_o we_o acknowledge_v two_o principal_a kind_n of_o man_n who_o help_n and_o service_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o use_v for_o the_o government_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n namely_o first_o teacher_n and_o other_o to_o administer_v the_o word_n sacrament_n &_o other_o ecclesiastical_a duty_n then_o godly_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n who_o ministery_n or_o office_n we_o confound_v not_o but_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v distinct_a and_o very_a diverse_a among_o which_o difference_n this_o also_o be_v not_o the_o least_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o teacher_n be_v always_o very_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n but_o of_o politic_a magistrate_n not_o so_o since_o the_o former_a the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o but_o the_o other_o it_o often_o have_v want_v and_o may_v want_v they_o vi_o about_o what_o matter_n especial_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v employ_v but_o as_o the_o sum_n of_o christian_n piety_n consist_v in_o three_o thing_n in_o faith_n in_o christ_n in_o continual_a repentance_n that_o be_v in_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o of_o our_o sin_n and_o quicken_a of_o the_o spirit_n and_o last_o in_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n so_o also_o we_o acknowledge_v three_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n first_o to_o teach_v and_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o also_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o offer_v up_o the_o public_a sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n second_o to_o declare_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o last_o to_o do_v all_o such_o thing_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o do_v belong_v to_o order_n and_o to_o decency_n and_o do_v make_v for_o edification_n and_o not_o for_o destruction_n according_a to_o the_o general_a rule_n give_v by_o the_o apostle_n 14.40_o 1._o cor._n 14.40_o that_o all_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n in_o order_n decent_o and_o to_o edification_n neither_o think_v we_o that_o any_o authority_n be_v give_v unto_o minister_n beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o to_o any_o other_o end_n then_o for_o edification_n &_o therefore_o we_o deny_v that_o one_o bishop_n or_o all_o bishop_n together_o have_v authority_n to_o appoint_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o scripture_n to_o add_v or_o detract_v any_o thing_n or_o change_v any_o thing_n in_o they_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o institute_v new_a sacrament_n to_o bring_v new_a rite_n into_o the_o church_n to_o prescribe_v any_o law_n which_o may_v bind_v conscience_n or_o may_v be_v think_v equal_a to_o god_n law_n to_o forbid_v any_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v grant_v and_o leave_v free_a or_o last_o to_o command_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v have_v or_o true_o be_v say_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n xxi_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v also_o prince_n their_o political_a authority_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o the_o way_n we_o disallow_v not_o but_o that_o bishop_n which_o be_v also_o prince_n beside_o their_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n they_o have_v also_o their_o political_a rite_n and_o secular_a power_n even_o as_o other_o prince_n have_v the_o law_n of_o command_v in_o secular_a cause_n the_o law_n of_o the_o sword_n some_o of_o they_o the_o law_n of_o choose_v and_o confirm_v king_n and_o emperor_n and_o of_o direct_v and_o order_v other_o political_a matter_n and_o to_o constrain_v people_n that_o be_v their_o subject_n to_o do_v they_o obedience_n and_o therefore_o we_o confess_v that_o their_o political_a commandment_n which_o may_v be_v keep_v without_o breach_n of_o god_n law_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v by_o their_o subject_n not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n rom._n 13.5_o for_o we_o know_v that_o all_o power_n be_v of_o god_n 13.1.2_o rom._n 13.1.2_o and_o whosoever_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o that_o king_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v 2.17_o 1._o pet._n 2.17_o and_o that_o we_o
minister_n teacher_n student_n library_n and_o book_n all_o kind_n of_o instrument_n and_o thing_n necessary_a for_o church_n and_o school_n but_o also_o spital_n and_o hospital_n and_o other_o such_o like_a place_n where_o such_o live_v as_o be_v peculiarly_a to_o be_v relieve_v and_o care_v for_o of_o the_o church_n xxx_o what_o manner_n of_o temple_n or_o church_n christian_n ought_v to_o have_v what_o language_n to_o use_v therein_o ceremony_n of_o church_n and_o ceremony_n what_o habit_n &_o apparel_n what_o holy_a day_n to_o be_v keep_v to_o who_o they_o must_v pray_v and_o last_o that_o the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v not_o prescribe_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n ought_v to_o be_v free_a and_o since_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o cause_n why_o faithful_a people_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o may_v be_v be_v wont_a and_o aught_o to_o dwell_v together_o in_o the_o same_o city_n town_n and_o village_n that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o private_o among_o themselves_o daily_o nourish_v a_o common_a faith_n by_o godly_a conference_n &_o practice_v mutual_a charity_n by_o christian_n duty_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v meet_v together_o in_o certain_a place_n &_o at_o certain_a know_v time_n public_o to_o praise_v &_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n to_o perform_v public_a work_n of_o charity_n towards_o the_o poor_a which_o thing_n indeed_o can_v be_v do_v without_o language_n without_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n therefore_o concern_v they_o also_o what_o our_o opinion_n be_v we_o will_v briesty_a declare_v see_v it_o be_v beyond_o all_o controversy_n that_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v to_o edification_n &_o all_o show_n of_o superstition_n ought_v to_o be_v avoid_v we_o judge_v that_o true_a piety_n and_o the_o church_n edification_n require_v church_n temple_n or_o church_n first_o concern_v place_n that_o if_o they_o may_v use_v the_o old_a and_o profane_a temple_n the_o same_o must_v be_v clean_o purge_v of_o all_o idol_n and_o all_o relic_n and_o monument_n of_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n 6.16_o 1_o cor._n 6.16_o for_o what_o agreement_n have_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n language_n language_n moreover_o no_o language_n be_v to_o be_v use_v but_o that_o which_o be_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n for_o what_o edification_n can_v come_v to_o the_o church_n by_o a_o unknown_a language_n 28_o 1_o cor._n 14_o 28_o the_o apostle_n sure_o command_v they_o to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n which_o speak_v language_n if_o there_o be_v no_o interpreter_n thirdlie_o all_o pride_n and_o vanity_n of_o garment_n be_v to_o be_v shun_v and_o all_o those_o ornament_n garment_n garment_n which_o do_v rather_o beseem_v the_o profane_a theater_n of_o the_o gentile_n than_o the_o sacred_a temple_n of_o christian_n and_o which_o rather_o tend_v to_o delight_v the_o flesh_n they_o to_o edify_v the_o spirit_n but_o all_o thing_n must_v be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n with_o most_o high_a reverence_n and_o modesty_n as_o in_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n and_o albeit_o concern_v the_o fashion_n of_o garment_n which_o minister_n ought_v public_o to_o wear_v either_o in_o their_o ministry_n or_o out_o of_o it_o we_o do_v not_o think_v it_o a_o matter_n to_o be_v so_o stand_v upon_o that_o for_o it_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v trouble_v yet_o where_o they_o come_v near_o to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o we_o judge_v the_o church_n rather_o to_o be_v approve_v holie-day_n holie-day_n four_o that_o upon_o every_o lord_n day_n the_o congregation_n shall_v come_v together_o and_o make_v a_o holy_a assembly_n since_o we_o see_v that_o ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o day_n have_v be_v religious_o consecrate_v and_o dedicate_v to_o that_o holy_a business_n next_o unto_o the_o lord_n day_n we_o can_v not_o but_o allow_v of_o the_o hallow_n of_o those_o day_n likewise_o wherein_o we_o keep_v the_o memory_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v celebrate_v the_o nativity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o his_o circumcision_n his_o passion_n his_o resurrection_n his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n his_o send_v down_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o apostle_n upon_o other_o day_n even_o as_o each_o church_n shall_v think_v to_o be_v convenient_a so_o also_o let_v they_o call_v a_o holy_a assembly_n to_o the_o word_n to_o the_o sacrament_n to_o prayer_n or_o collect_v 2.16_o col._n 2.16_o but_o evermore_o let_v all_o superstitious_a observation_n of_o day_n be_v far_o from_o they_o prayer_n prayer_n fiftlie_o that_o prayer_n may_v be_v make_v to_o god_n only_o and_o to_o jesus_n christ_n without_o invocation_n of_o angel_n or_o any_o saint_n that_o be_v dead_a even_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v and_o the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o old_a collecte_v 13.56_o heb._n 13.56_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o god_n own_o commandment_n who_o will_v have_v this_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o of_o the_o mouth_n to_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o he_o only_o ceremony_n ceremony_n six_o concern_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n the_o same_o piety_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n do_v require_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o bitter_o and_o sharp_o be_v controvert_v as_o though_o the_o contention_n be_v upon_o life_n and_o death_n but_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o every_o congregation_n in_o free_a choice_n as_o we_o read_v in_o socrates_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n it_o be_v in_o the_o old_a church_n concern_v which_o matter_n in_o general_n we_o allow_v and_o embrace_v both_o the_o epistle_n of_o augustine_n to_o lanuarius_fw-la 119_o tom._n 2._o ep_n 118_o &_o 119_o for_o these_o tend_v to_o the_o church_n edification_n xxxi_o public_a fast_n ought_v sometime_o to_o be_v command_v and_o the_o same_o be_v most_o profitable_a &_o commendable_a fast_n of_o fast_n yet_o no_o man_n must_v be_v constrain_v to_o they_o it_o appertain_v also_o to_o a_o profitable_a government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o as_o private_a fast_n be_v in_o man_n free_a choice_n so_o also_o to_o the_o public_a fast_n all_o man_n be_v to_o be_v counsel_v but_o no_o man_n to_o be_v constrain_v the_o commodity_n of_o fast_n can_v sufficient_o be_v commend_v yea_o it_o often_o happen_v that_o they_o be_v very_o needful_a so_o that_o godly_a magistrate_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v compel_v to_o command_v public_a fast_n unto_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o the_o appease_n of_o some_o grievous_a wrath_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n not_o that_o by_o they_o we_o can_v deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o mitigation_n of_o god_n anger_n but_o that_o by_o tame_v of_o the_o flesh_n the_o spirit_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o more_o fervent_o to_o call_v upon_o god_n &_o to_o appease_v he_o by_o faithful_a invocation_n by_o the_o way_n it_o pertain_v to_o the_o church_n edification_n that_o no_o man_n conscience_n be_v compel_v and_o bind_v unto_o such_o fast_n since_o they_o ought_v to_o proceed_v from_o a_o free_a willing_a and_o true_o humble_v spirit_n as_o also_o the_o apostle_n write_v of_o alm_n to_o be_v bestow_v on_o the_o poor_a that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v not_o with_o heaviness_n or_o upon_o constraint_n but_o as_o every_o man_n can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n xxxii_o at_o no_o time_n meat_n choice_n of_o meat_n not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o public_a fast_n the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o be_v forbid_v any_o kind_n of_o meat_n hereof_o it_o also_o follow_v that_o at_o no_o time_n either_o of_o fast_n or_o not_o fast_n any_o kind_n of_o meat_n be_v to_o be_v forbid_v to_o any_o since_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v defile_v a_o man_n 4.1.3_o mat._n 15.11_o tit._n 1.15_o 1._o tim._n 4.1.3_o but_o to_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o and_o the_o apostle_n call_v their_o doctrine_n who_o command_v abstinence_n from_o meat_n for_o religion_n sake_n the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o doctrine_n therefore_o how_o can_v it_o tend_v to_o the_o church_n edification_n xxxiii_o sick_a people_n must_v be_v visit_v burial_n of_o sick-man_n and_o burial_n comfort_v and_o strengthen_v in_o faith_n and_o they_o that_o be_v die_a must_v be_v acompany_v with_o prayer_n &_o commend_v to_o christ_n &_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a reverent_o bury_v neither_o ought_v the_o church_n to_o take_v less_o care_n of_o the_o sick_a them_z of_o the_o whole_a nor_o of_o the_o dead_a then_o of_o the_o live_n see_v all_o be_v member_n of_o christ_n and_o their_o body_n temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o therefore_o acknowledge_v that_o
the_o four_o that_o they_o shall_v more_o diligent_o than_o the_o lay-man_n apply_v the_o read_n and_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o those_o art_n and_o tongue_n whereby_o the_o scripture_n may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v and_o likewise_o their_o prayer_n and_o holy_a contemplation_n the_o five_o that_o they_o shall_v also_o apply_v themselves_o with_o a_o more_o diligent_a care_n not_o one_o lie_v to_o the_o proper_a duty_n command_v unto_o every_o one_o but_o also_o to_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o appertain_v to_o edification_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 39_o upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o discipline_n be_v conclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o synod_n these_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o discipline_n without_o which_o we_o see_v not_o how_o any_o congregation_n can_v be_v right_o order_v or_o preserve_v and_o how_o shall_v this_o discipline_n have_v any_o place_n there_o where_o the_o minister_n do_v never_o meet_v together_o to_o know_v what_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o church_n or_o what_o be_v want_v to_o make_v a_o censure_n on_o man_n deed_n to_o judge_v upon_o doctrine_n if_o any_o new_a be_v spread_v to_o consult_v upon_o all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n we_o judge_v therefore_o that_o meeting_n of_o minister_n and_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n be_v very_o necessary_a to_o a_o true_a &_o wholesome_a administration_n and_o conservation_n of_o church_n see_v neither_o any_o civil_a state_n common_a wealth_n nor_o kingdom_n can_v stand_v without_o their_o senate_n counsel_n parliament_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o meeting_n therefore_o we_o will_v wonderful_o well_o like_a that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v that_o which_o be_v allow_v by_o a_o new_a decree_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n namely_o that_o in_o every_o province_n at_o the_o least_o twice_o in_o the_o year_n sinod_n may_v be_v celebrate_v and_o that_o sometime_o also_o a_o general_a council_n may_v be_v call_v of_o the_o most_o learned_a discreet_a and_o wise_a minister_n of_o all_o province_n and_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n which_o profess_v the_o gospel_n which_o if_o ever_o it_o may_v be_v in_o this_o our_o woeful_a &_o miserable_a time_n wherein_o so_o many_o and_o such_o horrible_a heresy_n be_v every_o where_o recall_v out_o of_o hell_n it_o will_v as_o we_o think_v do_v much_o good_a and_o we_o pray_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n with_o our_o whole_a heart_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n that_o he_o will_v stir_v up_o the_o godly_a and_o valiant_a constantine_n valentinians_n theodosiy_n who_o by_o their_o authority_n may_v call_v a_o council_n in_o which_o themselves_o be_v present_a and_o moderate_v the_o synod_n it_o may_v be_v deliberate_v friendly_a and_o brotherly_a out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o godly_a agreement_n peace_n and_o salvation_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o salnation_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a 40_o error_n we_o therefore_o disallow_v all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o this_o foresay_a doctrine_n confirm_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o chief_o these_o special_a point_n 1_o that_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o man_n only_o and_o the_o angel_n not_o to_o pertain_v unto_o the_o same_o 2_o that_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o the_o elect_a but_o also_o of_o reprobate_a hypocrite_n &_o that_o they_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n 3_o that_o the_o church_n do_v so_o consist_v of_o the_o elect_a and_o of_o true_a saint_n that_o in_o it_o shall_v be_v contain_v no_o hypocrite_n and_o that_o in_o the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v comprehend_v under_o the_o church_n name_n 4_o that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v before_o christ_n come_n be_v not_o a_o true_a church_n but_o only_o a_o type_n or_o figure_n of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v by_o christ_n &_o the_o apostle_n 5_o that_o the_o church_n have_v two_o head_n one_o invisible_a and_o remain_v in_o heaven_n namely_o christ_n and_o another_o visible_a rule_v upon_o earth_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o who_o whosoever_o do_v not_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n pertain_v to_o religion_n and_o obey_v not_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o can_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v save_v 6_o to_o affirm_v upon_o any_o particular_a church_n that_o it_o can_v not_o err_v 7_o so_o to_o bind_v the_o church_n to_o certain_a place_n and_o person_n as_o to_o say_v there_o only_o with_o they_o be_v the_o church_n 8_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v those_o for_o christ_n church_n which_o although_o they_o hold_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n yet_o in_o ceremony_n or_o in_o some_o part_n of_o doctrine_n do_v not_o altogether_o jump_v with_o us._n 9_o to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n upon_o any_o error_n or_o for_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o some_o man_n 10_o to_o stand_v in_o contention_n that_o where_o true_a doctrine_n true_a service_n and_o right_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n be_v banish_v yet_o that_o therefore_o there_o remain_v the_o true_a &_o apostolical_a church_n because_o there_o may_v be_v show_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o those_o be_v not_o true_a church_n which_o although_o they_o keep_v fast_o the_o true_a doctrine_n right_a sacrament_n and_o pure_a discipline_n yet_o can_v not_o show_v a_o continuance_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n never_o break_v 11_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o bishop_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n be_v extend_v beyond_o those_o matter_n whereunto_o he_o be_v call_v of_o christ_n 12_o that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o alter_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n or_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n or_o to_o make_v new_a commandment_n that_o may_v bind_v conscience_n 13_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o minister_n to_o marry_v wife_n or_o at_o least_o to_o marry_v the_o second_o time_n 14_o that_o minister_n may_v not_o lawful_o receive_v stipend_n 15_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a in_o church_n to_o use_v a_o unknown_a language_n though_o there_o be_v no_o interpretation_n 16_o that_o it_o be_v also_o lawful_a to_o invocate_v beside_o god_n and_o lesus_fw-la christ_n the_o holy_a man_n that_o be_v dead_a and_o to_o direct_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n unto_o they_o 17_o that_o christian_n may_v not_o in_o the_o fast_a time_n of_o lent_n and_o other_o certain_a day_n eat_v any_o kind_n of_o meat_n 18_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v well_o in_o pray_v for_o dead_a man_n soul_n that_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n chap._n xxvi_o of_o a_o magistrate_n see_v we_o have_v now_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o kind_n of_o man_n who_o labour_n god_n use_v in_o the_o governance_n of_o the_o church_n namely_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n and_o their_o duty_n and_o other_o matter_n belong_v unto_o they_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o also_o brief_o declare_v what_o our_o faith_n be_v concern_v the_o other_o kind_n that_o be_v the_o civil_a magistrate_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v also_o use_v his_o ministry_n especial_o if_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n to_o the_o defence_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n i._o every_o magistrate_n whether_o godly_a or_o ungodlie_a be_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o no_o magistrate_n simple_o to_o be_v resist_v we_o believe_v therefore_o that_o every_o magistrate_n aswell_o impious_a as_o godly_a 7_o rom._n 13.1_o 1._o pet._n 2.13_o rom._n 13_o 7_o be_v from_o the_o lord_n god_n and_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o revenge_v of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o well_o doer_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v &_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o his_o commandment_n which_o may_v be_v do_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n &_o without_o breach_n of_o god_n law_n 13.5_o rom._n 13.5_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o that_o not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n namely_o because_o the_o lord_n so_o command_v therefore_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v god_n minister_v 13.2_o rom._n 13.2_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v resist_v for_o who_o so_o resist_v it_o resist_v god_n ordinance_n and_o god_n himself_o ii_o a_o magistrate_n that_o command_v any_o thing_n against_o god_n must_v not_o be_v obey_v but_o yet_o if_o a_o magistrate_n command_v we_o any_o thing_n against_o the_o will_n of_o he_o who_o send_v and_o who_o minister_n he_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v we_o doubt_v not_o with_o the_o apostle_n to_o deny_v obedience_n unto_o he_o 5.29_o act._n 5.29_o and_o to_o say_v we_o ought_v to_o obey_v god_n more_o than_o man_n whenas_o
indeed_o such_o a_o magistrate_n be_v not_o in_o that_o behalf_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o we_o must_v be_v subject_a and_o obey_v the_o magistrate_n for_o conscience_n sake_n &_o not_o for_o fear_v only_o 13.5_o rom._n 13.5_o then_o we_o conclude_v that_o where_o we_o can_v for_o conscience_n obey_v he_o neither_o ought_v we_o there_o for_o fear_v to_o obey_v he_o in_o other_o matter_n 13.2_o rom._n 13.2_o whoso_o resist_v the_o power_n we_o know_v that_o he_o resist_v god_n and_o shall_v receive_v to_o himself_o damnation_n iii_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o all_o magistrate_n that_o what_o there_o duty_n be_v they_o may_v indeed_o perform_v and_o what_o the_o duty_n of_o every_o magistrate_n be_v but_o see_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o free_a magistrate_n be_v to_o have_v a_o diligent_a care_n both_o in_o make_v law_n in_o give_v judgement_n and_o also_o in_o punish_v offence_n that_o their_o subject_n may_v live_v virtuous_o and_o after_o god_n law_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v live_v in_o this_o world_n 2.12_o tit._n 2.12_o sober_o therefore_o chaste_o and_o honest_o and_o right_o therefore_o peaceable_o with_o our_o neighbour_n and_o godlilie_o towards_o god_n and_o that_o no_o prince_n can_v perform_v this_o of_o themselves_o unless_o god_n endue_v they_o with_o a_o knowledge_n of_o their_o duty_n &_o stir_v they_o up_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v therefore_o that_o which_o we_o do_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n 2.2_o phil._n 2.13_o 1._o tim._n 2.2_o the_o same_o we_o teach_v other_o that_o they_o shall_v also_o do_v namely_o that_o they_o must_v pray_v for_o all_o magistrate_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o that_o they_o may_v both_o be_v willing_a and_o able_a to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v their_o duty_n &_o so_o may_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a &_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o honesty_n and_o godliness_n that_o be_v that_o we_o may_v live_v all_o friendly_a and_o in_o peace_n on_o with_o another_o that_o a_o public_a honesty_n may_v be_v observe_v and_o true_a piety_n and_o religion_n preserve_v and_o increase_v iv_o it_o belong_v principal_o to_o a_o christian_n prince_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o care_n of_o christian_n religion_n and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o godly_a magistrate_n we_o believe_v that_o it_o chief_o belong_v unto_o he_o that_o beside_o the_o regard_n of_o the_o public_a and_o politic_a good_a and_o profit_n of_o the_o public_a and_o politic_a peace_n and_o honesty_n he_o shall_v also_o take_v the_o peculiar_a care_n of_o christian_n religion_n since_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v he_o the_o keeper_n of_o both_o the_o table_n etc._n jos_n 1.8_o deu._n 13.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o command_v he_o that_o as_o a_o prince_n he_o always_o keep_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o may_v punish_v aswell_o idolater_n and_o blasphemor_n false_a prophet_n and_o seducer_n as_o murderer_n and_o adulterer_n and_o the_o same_o be_v abundant_o confirm_v by_o example_n of_o godly_a king_n in_o israel_n and_o christian_n prince_n constantine_n valentinian_n theodosius_n justinian_n &_o other_o who_o not_o only_o as_o private_a man_n but_o also_o as_o king_n serve_v the_o lord_n according_a to_o his_o commandment_n even_o as_o concern_v their_o duty_n and_o office_n 50._o tun_n 2._o ep_n 50._o saint_n augustine_n most_o learned_o note_v out_o of_o the_o second_o psalm_n and_o declare_v it_o to_o boniface_n v._o the_o office_n of_o a_o godly_a prince_n concern_v religion_n be_v two_o fold_n and_o wherein_o it_o chief_o consist_v now_o since_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o godly_a prince_n that_o be_v a_o magistrate_n which_o have_v a_o free_a power_n over_o any_o people_n and_o authority_n within_o his_o jurisdiction_n to_o institute_v and_o reform_v religion_n be_v twofold_a which_o he_o owe_v to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n one_o about_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v unto_o religion_n the_o other_o respect_v man_n which_o be_v in_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o subject_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o first_o our_o belief_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v diligent_o take_v heed_n that_o by_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n right_o understand_v and_o expound_v by_o the_o very_a word_n itself_o and_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o analogy_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n religion_n may_v be_v institute_v in_o his_o dominion_n or_o kingdom_n or_o where_o it_o be_v institute_v may_v be_v keep_v find_v and_o pure_a or_o where_o it_o be_v corrupt_v may_v be_v restore_v and_o reform_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o subject_n for_o this_o we_o read_v have_v be_v command_v of_o god_n and_o of_o moses_n and_o ever_o observe_v of_o all_o godly_a prince_n vi_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n by_o the_o part_n we_o believe_v therefore_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o godly_a magistrate_n be_v first_o to_o know_v out_o of_o god_n word_n general_o and_o according_a to_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o christian_n religion_n and_o which_o be_v the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n whereunto_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v reform_v that_o he_o may_v do_v or_o dare_v to_o do_v nothing_o only_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o but_o also_o upon_o his_o own_o sure_a knowledge_n then_o this_o be_v thus_o know_v to_o have_v a_o care_n that_o minister_n which_o be_v meet_a man_n for_o the_o office_n not_o by_o his_o own_o choice_n but_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n may_v be_v choose_v call_v and_o ordain_v thirdlie_o to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o they_o both_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v set_v forth_o expound_v and_o often_o beat_v upon_o and_o also_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n administer_v yea_o and_o the_o discipline_n ordain_v of_o christ_n exercise_v four_o to_o have_v a_o regard_n to_o this_o that_o school_n may_v be_v erect_v wherein_o aswell_o good_a art_n and_o tongue_n may_v be_v diligent_o teach_v as_o also_o the_o holy_a scripture_n faithful_o expound_v and_o the_o studious_a may_v learn_v the_o sum_n of_o christian_n wisdom_n five_o whereby_o minister_n and_o teacher_n may_v be_v hold_v in_o their_o duty_n and_o so_o true_a religion_n by_o they_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n to_o do_v their_o best_a that_o private_a consultation_n yea_o and_o also_o provincial_a synod_n as_o be_v say_v before_o may_v at_o least_o twice_o in_o the_o year_n be_v call_v six_o to_o carry_v a_o special_a care_n to_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v bestow_v on_o the_o right_n that_o be_v on_o the_o true_a godly_a use_n and_o that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n be_v supply_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o minister_n thereof_o vii_o a_o godly_a prince_n ought_v not_o to_o deal_v with_o all_o man_n of_o a_o diverse_a religion_n after_o one_o manner_n but_o see_v to_o say_v something_o brief_o of_o the_o other_o duty_n of_o a_o prince_n concern_v religion_n there_o be_v diverse_a kind_n of_o man_n which_o a_o prince_n may_v have_v under_o his_o government_n namely_o either_o mere_a infidel_n or_o such_o as_o indeed_o profess_v christ_n but_o yet_o be_v also_o open_a idolater_n or_o in_o many_o thing_n apostate_n from_o the_o apostolical_a church_n or_o in_o some_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n manifest_a heretic_n or_o else_o err_v upon_o simplicity_n or_o such_o as_o be_v right_o persuade_v in_o all_o matter_n we_o do_v certain_o hold_v that_o a_o prince_n ought_v not_o to_o use_v one_o kind_n of_o measure_n towards_o all_o these_o sort_n for_o some_o of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v love_v cherish_v and_o honour_a some_o to_o be_v wink_v at_o some_o not_o to_o be_v suffer_v other_o some_o to_o be_v quite_o cut_v off_o and_o none_o must_v be_v permit_v to_o blaspheme_v christ_n or_o to_o worship_n idol_n or_o retain_v ungodlie_a ceremony_n viii_o all_o man_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o all_o the_o high_a power_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o christ_n himself_o and_o to_o his_o word_n last_o we_o believe_v that_o every_o soul_n that_o be_v 13.1_o rom._n 13.1_o every_o man_n none_o except_o and_o therefore_o also_o every_o inferior_a power_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a and_o great_a power_n yea_o and_o that_o superior_a power_n also_o no_o less_o than_o the_o inferior_a and_o all_o other_o man_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o lord_n 6.15_o apo_n 17.14_o 1._o tim._n 6.15_o for_o it_o be_v god_n will_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o kiss_v the_o son_n and_o bow_v their_o neck_n under_o the_o yoke_n
of_o his_o discipline_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o true_a government_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o prince_n shall_v chief_o subject_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v admonish_v and_o reform_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o other_o by_o their_o example_n may_v do_v so_o also_o the_o more_o cheerful_o and_o that_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o the_o prince_n or_o ruler_n may_v more_o free_o punish_v they_o for_o it_o and_o compel_v they_o to_o their_o duty_n ix_o error_n we_o therefore_o condemn_v all_o contemner_n of_o magistrate_n rebel_n seditious_a person_n enemy_n of_o their_o common_a wealth_n and_o whosoever_o do_v either_o open_o refuse_v to_o perform_v their_o duty_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o ruler_n or_o do_v crafty_o shift_v the_o same_o we_o condemn_v by_o name_n the_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n to_o bear_v office_n much_o less_o to_o use_v his_o authority_n over_o his_o subject_n in_o the_o course_n of_o religion_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o all_o man_n to_o follow_v what_o religion_n he_o will_v &_o none_o aught_o to_o be_v compel_v to_o faith_n we_o disallow_v they_o also_o which_o give_v authority_n in_o religion_n unto_o magistrate_n only_o as_o they_o say_v for_o name_n sake_n deny_v that_o they_o have_v authority_n to_o call_v synod_n to_o consult_v about_o religion_n to_o reform_v church_n and_o to_o determine_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n such_o thing_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o people_n salvation_n and_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o executor_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o bishop_n appoint_v as_o also_o neither_o do_v we_o allow_v those_o magistrate_n who_o without_o a_o sufficient_a knowledge_n in_o the_o cause_n do_v alter_v religion_n upon_o their_o own_o pleasure_n do_v condemn_v man_n never_o hear_v and_o spoil_v and_o confiscate_v their_o good_n set_v down_o rule_v of_o religion_n not_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o rather_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o bear_v themselves_o not_o as_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o as_o lord_n over_o the_o church_n nor_o will_v bow_v their_o neck_n under_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o who_o that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o great_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o better_a mind_n we_o pray_v and_o beseech_v god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n chap._n xxvii_o of_o perpetual_a remisson_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n i._o there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a dispensation_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n and_o thereunto_o be_v the_o perpetual_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n ordain_v we_o have_v before_o confess_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o one_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n he_o present_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n commit_v and_o draw_v a_o new_a life_n from_o his_o head_n christ_n and_o so_o be_v make_v a_o livelie_a member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o the_o most_o holy_a one_o that_o be_v in_o this_o militant_a church_n do_v daily_a sin_n even_o to_o the_o last_o end_n of_o their_o life_n so_o that_o they_o have_v still_o need_n of_o new_a forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o also_o of_o new_a repentance_n and_o new_a faith_n to_o apprehend_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o christ_n &_o that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v dispense_v and_o bestow_v perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n which_o be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n be_v ordain_v thereunto_o ii_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o since_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o sin_n the_o action_n itself_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o action_n &_o therefore_o the_o sinner_n fault_n remain_v in_o he_o and_o last_o the_o desert_n of_o due_a punishment_n cleave_v unto_o the_o fault_n then_o we_o understand_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v we_o when_o not_o only_o the_o fault_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o action_n be_v not_o impute_v unto_o we_o but_o also_o when_o as_o the_o desert_n or_o guiltiness_n be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o due_a punishment_n pardon_v for_o then_o be_v our_o sin_n proper_o forgive_v we_o and_o we_o when_o we_o desire_v in_o prayer_n that_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v we_o we_o desire_v not_o only_o to_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o fault_n and_o that_o the_o iniquity_n may_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o we_o but_o also_o that_o the_o punishment_n and_o condemnation_n due_a unto_o we_o for_o the_o iniquity_n may_v be_v forgive_v and_o we_o deliver_v from_o our_o debt_n and_o guiltiness_n see_v that_o neither_o we_o can_v say_v that_o we_o forgive_v our_o brethren_n their_o debt_n unless_o we_o set_v they_o free_a from_o the_o debt_n itself_o and_o from_o all_o satisfaction_n and_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o be_v not_o command_v to_o ask_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o he_o will_v give_v we_o and_o that_o christ_n have_v cancel_v the_o hand_n write_v of_o all_o our_o debt_n have_v himself_o make_v a_o perfect_a and_o full_a payment_n and_o satisfaction_n iii_o the_o affliction_n which_o the_o child_n of_o god_n endure_v after_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v be_v not_o punishment_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n past_a but_o fatherly_a chastisement_n for_o those_o to_o come_v but_o whereas_o god_n after_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v wont_a to_o afflict_v and_o scourge_v his_o child_n with_o many_o torment_n we_o believe_v that_o god_n do_v it_o not_o for_o that_o they_o shall_v by_o that_o mean_n either_o whole_o or_o in_o part_n satisfy_v his_o justice_n for_o their_o sin_n see_v that_o one_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o christ_n for_o we_o be_v enough_o and_o more_o then_o enough_o but_o that_o by_o they_o as_o by_o fatherly_a correction_n we_o may_v afterward_o be_v more_o wary_a and_o take_v heed_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o mortify_n of_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v no_o more_o so_o easy_o slip_n into_o sin_n whereupon_o we_o with_o augustine_n do_v call_v they_o and_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v call_v 34._o t._n 7._o de_fw-la pec_fw-la mer._n &_o ren_fw-it lib._n 2._o c._n 33_o &_o 34._o not_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o trial_n of_o faith_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o saint_n iu_o sin_n be_v proper_o remit_v of_o god_n alone_o free_o and_o for_o christ_n sake_n our_o mediator_n we_o believe_v also_o 43.25_o je_n 43.25_o that_o our_o sin_n be_v proper_o forgive_v we_o of_o god_n only_o by_o mere_a favour_n and_o for_o christ_n our_o mediator_n since_o also_o it_o be_v he_o alone_o against_o who_o we_o proper_o commit_v sin_n both_o mediate_o and_o immediate_o when_o as_o we_o break_v his_o law_n 23.34_o luc._n 23.34_o and_o it_o be_v always_o in_o the_o power_n only_o of_o the_o creditor_n to_o gratify_v his_o debtor_n and_o to_o forgive_v their_o debt_n whereupon_o christ_n also_o as_o man_n pray_v his_o father_n for_o they_o which_o crucify_v he_o that_o he_o will_v pardon_v they_o &c_n luc._n 5.21_o &c_n &c_n and_o forgive_v they_o their_o offence_n &_o when_o the_o jew_n say_v who_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o only_a god_n he_o partly_o by_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o partly_o by_o show_v a_o miracle_n confirm_v it_o wherefore_o in_o that_o that_o christ_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n forgive_v sin_n we_o with_o the_o father_n do_v believe_v it_o may_v well_o be_v conclude_v he_o be_v true_a god_n since_o the_o same_o can_v be_v do_v by_o any_o mere_a creature_n but_o only_o ministerial_o or_o as_o be_v a_o minister_n as_o they_o speak_v &_o in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o god_n 20.23_o mat._n 18.18_o joh._n 20.23_o which_o we_o know_v be_v equal_o give_v not_o to_o one_o alone_a but_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o to_o all_o lawful_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n v._o christ_n god_n and_o man_n indeed_o forgive_v sin_n but_o in_o a_o diverse_a manner_n as_o he_o be_v god_n &_o as_o he_o be_v man_n whereon_o it_o also_o follow_v that_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n which_o we_o also_o confess_v together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n forgive_v sin_n but_o he_o do_v it_o in_o one_o sort_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o in_o another_o as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o as_o he_o be_v god_n he_o do_v effect_v the_o same_o proper_o and_o of_o his_o authority_n but_o as_o he_o be_v man_n he_o do_v it_o and_o do_v
true_o join_v to_o he_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o so_o to_o have_v believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o have_v be_v livelie_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o to_o have_v have_v communion_n withal_o the_o saint_n and_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o the_o lord_n also_o teach_v say_v he_o will_v say_v to_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n for_o i_o be_v hungry_a and_o you_o give_v i_o to_o eat_v etc._n etc._n ii_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o former_a opinion_n and_o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v not_o give_v for_o our_o own_o work_n but_o for_o christ_n in_o who_o we_o be_v free_o choose_v bless_a and_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o by_o these_o word_n the_o lord_n seem_v to_o have_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o our_o good_a work_n be_v testimony_n of_o our_o election_n blessing_n and_o adoption_n in_o christ_n and_o so_o of_o our_o lawful_a inheritance_n and_o that_o the_o cause_n whereby_o we_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n be_v partly_o because_o that_o ere_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v ere_o we_o have_v do_v any_o good_a thing_n that_o kingdom_n be_v free_o prepare_v for_o we_o in_o christ_n partly_o because_o we_o be_v bless_v of_o the_o father_n namely_o 1.3_o eph._n 1.3_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o call_v by_o grace_n justify_v forgive_v our_o offence_n and_o sanctify_a last_o because_o we_o be_v in_o the_o same_o christ_n adopt_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o venue_v or_o bear_v again_o by_o his_o spirit_n &_o therefore_o make_v coheir_n with_o he_o of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o plain_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v by_o the_o right_n of_o inheritance_n possess_v as_o son_n whereas_o the_o lord_n therefore_o shall_v reckon_v up_o the_o work_n of_o piety_n he_o shall_v do_v it_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o this_o purpose_n that_o by_o they_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o we_o be_v the_o true_o bless_v choose_a just_a child_n of_o god_n to_o who_o the_o inheritance_n be_v due_a 8.17_o rom._n 8.17_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o son_n than_o heir_n also_o but_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v declare_v by_o our_o regeneration_n and_o regeneration_n by_o the_o effect_n of_o regeneration_n which_o be_v call_v work_n of_o faith_n and_o piety_n iii_o as_o the_o godly_a shall_v have_v eternal_a life_n so_o the_o pain_n and_o fire_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v eternal_a and_o as_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n so_o also_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o all_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n that_o never_o shall_v be_v quench_v and_o there_o be_v torment_v for_o ever_o christ_n say_v plain_o go_v you_o into_o everlasting_a fire_n 25.42_o mat._n 25.42_o iu._n how_o happy_a that_o eternal_a life_n shall_v be_v it_o can_v neither_o be_v say_v nor_o thought_n but_o what_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o life_n it_o be_v and_o how_o great_a felicity_n which_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n we_o do_v with_o the_o apostle_n free_o confess_v 2.9_o 1._o cor._n 2.9_o that_o neither_o ear_n have_v hear_v nor_o have_v it_o come_v into_o man_n heart_n to_o conceive_v for_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n great_a and_o more_o excellent_a then_o can_v be_v comprehend_v in_o man_n understanding_n &_o of_o such_o pass_a happiness_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v wish_v more_o happy_a we_o therefore_o simple_o believe_v that_o we_o which_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o spirit_n which_o depend_v on_o his_o word_n which_o last_o do_v place_n but_o whole_a hope_n of_o salvation_n in_o he_o shall_v all_o be_v most_o bless_v 13.43_o mat._n 13.43_o shall_v all_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o fight_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v all_o see_v god_n even_o as_o he_o be_v 13.12_o 1._o cor._n 13.12_o we_o shall_v all_o live_v a_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a life_n with_o christ_n &_o his_o angel_n and_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o sin_n from_o all_o mystery_n from_o all_o ill_a without_o any_o long_a grief_n without_o fear_n without_o lack_n or_o desire_v of_o any_o thing_n 22.3.4_o 1._o cor._n 15.28_o apo._n 22.3.4_o because_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o we_o shall_v behold_v his_o face_n and_o in_o that_o city_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o night_n neither_o shall_v there_o need_v any_o candle_n or_o sunne-light_n because_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v we_o light_v and_o we_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o with_o christ_n jesus_n our_o head_n spouse_n saviour_n and_o our_o lord_n to_o who_o be_v praise_n honour_n and_o glory_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n observation_n of_o the_o same_o zanchiu_n upon_o his_o own_o confession_n not_o few_o nor_o small_a be_v the_o the_o occasion_n whereby_o i_o be_v induce_v rather_o to_o adjoine_v these_o my_o obsernation_n to_o my_o confession_n itself_o then_o to_o alter_v any_o thing_n therein_o contain_v many_o there_o be_v to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a upon_o what_o occasion_n at_o what_o time_n at_o who_o commandment_n in_o who_o name_n and_o for_o what_o purpose_n i_o even_o against_o my_o will_n and_o constrain_v thereunto_o write_v this_o sum_n of_o christian_n doctrine_n for_o although_o there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o see_v that_o this_o confession_n as_o be_v never_o look_v for_o be_v publish_v in_o their_o name_n for_o who_o sake_n it_o be_v write_v yet_o how_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v &_o for_o what_o cause_v it_o be_v do_v all_o man_n do_v not_o know_v many_o wonder_v at_o the_o deed_n yet_o ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a cause_n hereupon_o how_o diverse_a suspicion_n many_o man_n may_v gather_v how_o diverse_a judgement_n may_v be_v give_v of_o i_o and_o of_o the_o confession_n itself_o i_o say_v not_o of_o private_a man_n but_o even_o of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n yea_o how_o diverse_a and_o sinister_a speech_n may_v be_v throw_v out_o among_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n who_o be_v it_o that_o perceive_v not_o i_o be_v therefore_o enforce_v before_o i_o die_v to_o stop_v such_o sinister_a and_o false_a suspicion_n judgement_n and_o speech_n concern_v my_o doctrine_n that_o i_o think_v can_v be_v do_v by_o no_o better_a mean_n then_o to_o publish_v a_o part_n by_o itself_o both_o the_o confession_n even_o as_o i_o write_v it_o and_o a_o part_n likewise_o my_o observation_n upon_o the_o same_o wherein_o what_o so_o be_v dark_a be_v expound_v and_o what_o so_o be_v doubtful_a be_v confirm_v &_o so_o to_o leave_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n together_o to_o all_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n i_o think_v moreover_o it_o will_v be_v no_o little_a help_n to_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o man_n if_o there_o be_v any_o conceive_v if_o such_o judgement_n as_o learned_a man_n have_v give_v of_o my_o confession_n i_o make_v know_v to_o all_o the_o godly_a reader_n out_o of_o their_o own_o letter_n especial_o since_o by_o they_o it_o may_v well_o appear_v unto_o every_o man_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o confession_n come_v not_o forth_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o be_v appoint_v one_o great_a learned_a man_n write_v unto_o i_o concern_v that_o matter_n in_o these_o word_n whereas_o you_o write_v unto_o i_o concern_v your_o confession_n it_o have_v be_v read_v over_o both_o by_o i_o by_o n._n and_o other_o with_o great_a pleasure_n which_o be_v write_v very_o learned_o and_o with_o a_o exquisite_a method_n and_o if_o you_o take_v out_o that_o same_o which_o you_o have_v add_v in_o the_o end_n concern_v archbishop_n and_o the_o hierarchy_n it_o please_v i_o pass_v well_o but_o whenas_o together_o with_o the_o brethren_n n.n._n which_o be_v with_o we_o we_o confer_v about_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o a_o agreement_n among_o the_o church_n of_o our_o confession_n to_o be_v begin_v they_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n think_v only_o this_o to_o be_v the_o safe_a and_o speedy_a way_n that_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n receive_v and_o set_v forth_o by_o every_o of_o the_o church_n in_o each_o province_n shall_v be_v compose_v and_o frame_v into_o one_o harmony_n that_o they_o may_v be_v alike_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o faith_n all_o of_o they_o and_o each_o church_n embrace_v they_o as_o their_o own_o this_o their_o advice_n since_o they_o commend_v to_o we_o by_o many_o reason_n we_o have_v write_v unto_o you_o
this_o sign_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n consecrate_v unto_o christ_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o congregation_n &_o seal_v for_o to_o hold_v fast_o the_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o to_o perform_v obedience_n to_o his_o commandment_n and_o to_o be_v ingraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o his_o church_n and_o receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o to_o a_o perpetual_a amendment_n of_o life_n and_o to_o a_o continuance_n of_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o their_o life_n end_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o every_o of_o the_o faithful_a be_v baptize_v into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o bury_v with_o he_o whereof_o the_o sign_n be_v the_o very_o dip_v into_o the_o water_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o throughout_o our_o whole_a life_n we_o must_v die_v unto_o sin_n and_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n which_o be_v to_o be_v true_o baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n who_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v for_o us._n the_o four_o aphorism_n the_o substance_n also_o of_o the_o law_n yea_o the_o canonical_a law_n be_v perpetual_a and_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n or_o the_o prophet_n touch_v the_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n and_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o law_n of_o circumcision_n that_o they_o which_o be_v the_o covenant_n shall_v be_v seal_v unto_o god_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n but_o now_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v baptism_n which_o succeed_v circumcision_n coll._n 2._o add_v the_o place_n of_o peter_n out_o of_o the_o acts._n 2._o for_o 38._o repent_v you_o and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holte_n ghost_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n &_o to_o all_o that_o be_v a_o far_o of_o even_o as_o many_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v to_o whosoever_o therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n by_o christ_n belong_v to_o they_o also_o belong_v baptism_n but_o peter_n teach_v that_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o the_o young_a child_n of_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o young_a child_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v aphorism_n 6._o whereas_o we_o say_v that_o paul_n baptize_v again_o those_o of_o who_o it_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o 19_o of_o the_o act_n as_o be_v not_o right_o baptize_v we_o say_v it_o without_o prejudice_n to_o any_o learned_a interpreter_n for_o we_o condemn_v none_o only_o we_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o construe_v favourable_o of_o that_o word_n rebaptize_v for_o we_o mean_v not_o that_o they_o which_o be_v right_o baptize_v be_v afterward_o baptize_v again_o but_o they_o which_o be_v not_o baptize_v with_o true_a baptism_n where_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v before_o it_o they_o after_o paul_n have_v teach_v they_o the_o true_a and_o sound_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n then_o they_o take_v true_a baptism_n and_o after_o baptism_n by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o gift_n thereof_o &_o this_o to_o speak_v proper_o be_v indeed_o not_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v but_o to_o be_v true_o baptize_v now_o why_o i_o think_v so_o and_o do_v yet_o think_v i_o be_v induce_v by_o the_o authority_n both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o especial_o ambrose_n and_o hierome_n so_o expound_v that_o place_n and_o also_o by_o a_o reason_n draw_v from_o the_o text_n itself_o touch_v the_o authority_n first_o never_o any_o of_o the_o father_n do_v teach_v that_o these_o word_n and_o when_o they_o hear_v it_o they_o be_v baptize_v be_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n speak_v of_o they_o which_o hear_v john_n baptist_n but_o expound_v they_o as_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n speak_v of_o they_o which_o hear_v paul_n so_o chrysostome_n tom._n 3._o in_o act_n hom_n 40._o so_o occum_n in_o act_n ca._n 19_o so_o augustine_n tom._n 7._o cont_n petil._n ca._n 7._o so_o gregory_n tom._n 1._o in_o evang_n hom_n 20._o so_o bede_n in_o act_n ca._n 19_o so_o all_o the_o rest_n moreover_o most_o of_o they_o do_v in_o plain_a term_n write_v that_o these_o twelve_o disciple_n be_v baptize_v by_o paul_n or_o at_o least_o by_o paul_n commandment_n as_o have_v not_o be_v right_o baptize_v before_o because_o they_o hear_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o be_v baptize_v into_o his_o name_n ambrose_n tom._n 2._o the_o spi_v san_fw-it ad_fw-la theo._n imp_n ca._n 3._o last_o they_o themselves_o also_o which_o say_v we_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n be_v afterward_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o abound_v unto_o grace_n because_o they_o then_o by_o paul_n preach_n know_v the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o must_v it_o be_v think_v a_o contrariety_n because_o although_o afterwards_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o it_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o which_o be_v omit_v in_o word_n be_v express_v in_o faith_n for_o when_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o name_n be_v fullfil_v the_o whole_a mystery_n neither_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n separate_v from_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n because_o john_n baptize_v to_o repentance_n christ_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o far_o ambrose_n hierome_n tom._n 6._o in_o joel._n ca._n 2._o pa._n 66._o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o save_a health_n of_o god_n can_v be_v see_v except_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v down_o and_o who_o so_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o have_v not_o the_o eye_n of_o perfect_a faith_n whereon_o also_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o which_o be_v baptize_v by_o johns_n baptism_n into_o he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n because_o when_o paul_n ask_v they_o they_o answer_v we_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n they_o be_v baptize_v again_o yea_o they_o receive_v true_a baptism_n because_o without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n whatsoever_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o person_n be_v unperfect_a etc._n etc._n augustine_n count_n petil._n cap._n 7._o coll_n 498._o say_v paul_n baptize_v those_o twelve_o either_o because_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v johns_n baptism_n but_o lie_v or_o else_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v christ_n baptism_n for_o he_o think_v with_o cyprian_a and_o tertullian_n and_o other_o father_n that_o johns_n baptism_n and_o christ_n do_v differ_v of_o which_o matter_n more_o hereafter_o of_o our_o own_o writer_n also_o that_o learned_a man_n wolff_n musculus_fw-la about_o the_o place_n of_o the_o act._n 19_o think_v as_o ambrose_n do_v in_o his_o common_a place_n the_o place_n of_o baptism_n who_o word_n because_o he_o handle_v that_o place_n very_o large_o we_o will_v not_o repeat_v and_o before_o musculus_fw-la bucer_fw-la both_o on_o the_o three_o of_o matth._n and_o on_o the_o four_o of_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o ephes_n upon_o math._n he_o have_v these_o word_n to_o those_o ephesian_n which_o have_v be_v baptize_v with_o johns_n baptism_n not_o know_v what_o it_o be_v because_o as_o then_o they_o know_v not_o the_o holy_a gnost_n wherewith_o paul_n have_v preach_v that_o christ_n shall_v baptize_v they_o we_o read_v that_o he_o say_v act._n 19_o john_n baptize_v indeed_o with_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n now_o what_o do_v we_o else_o or_o ought_v we_o to_o do_v in_o baptise_v for_o we_o be_v also_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n so_o long_o as_o those_o who_o we_o baptize_v we_o also_o bury_v into_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v we_o ascribe_v they_o into_o that_o number_n which_o throughout_o all_o there_o life_n must_v die_v unto_o sin_n and_o live_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o yet_o shall_v not_o receive_v that_o neither_o but_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n therefore_o of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n who_o we_o baptize_v we_o require_v their_o faith_n in_o christ_n &_o the_o infant_n we_o commit_v unto_o the_o church_n to_o be_v bring_v up_o to_o the_o same_o faith_n therefore_o paul_n will_v never_o have_v rebaptise_v those_o ephesian_n if_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v with_o johns_n baptism_n that_o be_v with_o that_o baptism_n wherewith_o he_o use_v to_o baptize_v into_o
&_o obey_v the_o bishop_n &_o presbytery_n next_o unto_o they_o these_o those_o superior_a bishop_n do_v call_v together_o &_o all_o their_o whole_a clergy_n and_o do_v instruct_v they_o in_o knowledge_n and_o the_o diligent_a execution_n of_o their_o office_n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v that_o his_o people_n shall_v mutual_o love_v among_o themselves_o and_o shall_v mutual_o care_v one_o for_o another_o even_o as_o far_o and_o wide_o as_o may_v be_v possible_a for_o all_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n the_o holy_a father_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o each_o province_n for_o then_o all_o the_o roman_n jurisdiction_n be_v distribute_v into_o province_n shall_v meet_v together_o with_o their_o presbitery_n so_o often_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n require_v but_o always_o twice_o in_o the_o year_n and_o there_o they_o shall_v inquire_v concern_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o discipline_n how_o the_o same_o be_v administer_v and_o how_o it_o prosper_v in_o the_o church_n that_o where_o they_o find_v any_o default_n they_o may_v correct_v it_o that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v well_o they_o may_v confirm_v and_o set_v forward_o and_o that_o these_o synod_n may_v also_o be_v order_v aright_o and_o orderly_o they_o will_v have_v the_o metropolitaine_n the_o bishop_n of_o every_o mother_n city_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a director_n to_o call_v they_o together_o and_o to_o guide_v they_o for_o in_o each_o province_n the_o head_n city_n wherein_o be_v the_o mansion_n or_o seat_n of_o the_o chief_a governor_n be_v call_v metropolis_n or_o the_o mother_n city_n and_o therefore_o they_o enjoin_v unto_o these_o metro_n politaine_fw-mi bishop_n a_o certain_a care_n &_o charge_n over_o all_o the_o church_n throughout_o their_o province_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v understand_v of_o any_o thing_n teach_v or_o do_v amiss_o either_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n that_o they_o shall_v give_v warning_n thereof_o in_o time_n &_o if_o by_o their_o admonition_n they_o can_v not_o amend_v the_o same_o they_o for_o the_o correction_n thereof_o they_o shall_v call_v a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n for_o it_o be_v not_o grant_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v execute_v any_o judgement_n upon_o their_o own_o authority_n over_o church_n which_o have_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o for_o the_o power_n of_o judgement_n over_o both_o clergy_n &_o laity_n be_v only_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n &_o elder_n of_o the_o same_o place_n and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o synod_n therefore_o when_o there_o be_v any_o bishop_n to_o be_v ordain_v for_o church_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o they_o shall_v assemble_v at_o the_o same_o church_n withal_o if_o it_o may_v without_o hurt_n of_o the_o church_n if_o not_o with_o some_o at_o the_o least_o two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n which_o if_o he_o be_v not_o already_o elect_v shall_v guide_v and_o govern_v in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o election_n be_v do_v shall_v examine_v it_o and_o inquire_v of_o the_o man_n elect_v most_o severelie_o and_o make_v due_a proof_n of_o his_o whole_a life_n and_o of_o his_o skill_n and_o abllitie_n to_o perform_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o then_o at_o last_o shall_v invest_v he_o in_o his_o bishop_n function_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v institute_v and_o serve_v to_o this_o end_n that_o there_o may_v be_v as_o much_o know_v ledge_n and_o mutual_a care_n between_o church_n &_o the_o minister_n thereof_o as_o can_v be_v possible_a both_o for_o the_o remove_n &_o expel_v of_o all_o scandal_n of_o doctrine_n and_o life_n and_o also_o to_o the_o earneste_n and_o more_o effectual_a maintain_n provoke_a &_o increase_n of_o the_o edification_n of_o faith_n &_o a_o life_n worthy_a of_o christ_n our_o lord_n in_o so_o much_o as_o if_o any_o one_o do_v loiter_v or_o neglect_v their_o own_o duty_n the_o other_o bishop_n may_v be_v ready_a to_o help_v yea_o even_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o to_o the_o suspending_a of_o the_o obstinate_a and_o utter_v cast_v they_o out_o of_o their_o bishop_n function_n we_o shall_v consider_v what_o saint_n cyprian_n write_v to_o stephan_n the_o roman_n bishop_n concern_v martian_a bishop_n of_o arelatensis_fw-la who_o fall_v into_o the_o sect_n of_o novatian_n book_n 2._o epist_n 13_o and_o which_o he_o write_v in_o his_o 3._o epistle_n and_o first_o book_n of_o a_o certain_a flock_n distribute_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o the_o shepherd_n and_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n as_o he_o write_v to_o quirinus_n now_o further_o when_o the_o world_n begin_v to_o be_v full_a of_o church_n &_o that_o the_o metropolitanes_n have_v also_o need_v of_o their_o peculiar_a care_n for_o not_o all_o there_o begin_v now_o to_o grow_v very_o many_o have_v other_o skill_n enough_o or_o watchfulness_n enough_o for_o their_o place_n for_o ever_o and_o in_o all_o order_n of_o man_n there_o be_v few_o that_o do_v excel_v the_o care_n of_o some_o province_n be_v commit_v to_o certain_a bishop_n of_o the_o chief_a church_n as_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o constantinople_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n and_o afterward_o of_o caesarea_n &_o cappadocia_n and_o certain_a other_o as_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a increase_n of_o church_n of_o the_o faithful_a necessity_n do_v require_v but_o notwithstanding_o these_o primate_n bishop_n who_o afterward_o they_o call_v patriarch_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o other_o bishop_n or_o church_n more_o than_o as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o metropolitaine_n have_v over_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o their_o province_n every_o one_o do_v owe_v a_o special_a care_n and_o diligence_n to_o that_o portion_n of_o the_o church_n that_o belong_v to_o he_o it_o be_v his_o duty_n also_o to_o admonish_v the_o bishop_n in_o time_n if_o any_o have_v offend_v or_o neglect_v his_o duty_n and_o if_o admonition_n prevail_v not_o then_o to_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o counsel_n among_o these_o the_o first_o place_n be_v give_v to_o he_o of_o rome_n both_o for_o the_o reverence_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o also_o for_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o city_n which_o reason_n the_o father_n afterward_o follow_v give_v the_o second_o place_n to_o he_o of_o constantinople_n as_o be_v a_o second_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o imperial_a sea_n whereas_o antioch_n before_o have_v obtain_v the_o second_o place_n among_o these_o patriarch_n but_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n deprave_a by_o ambition_n do_v ever_o labour_n more_o that_o his_o rule_n may_v stretch_v far_o then_o to_o govern_v well_o these_o patriarch_n by_o occasion_n of_o this_o general_a care_n of_o the_o church_n commit_v unto_o they_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o first_o the_o ordain_v of_o their_o neighbour_n bishop_n and_o by_o that_o ordain_v they_o creep_v by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o at_o last_o confirm_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o such_o bishopp_n and_o their_o church_n which_o mischief_n when_o it_o grow_v to_o be_v very_o great_a there_o begin_v a_o grievous_a contention_n for_o a_o universal_a rule_n over_o all_o church_n which_o the_o first_o that_o labour_v to_o get_v unto_o himself_o be_v one_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n under_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_n concern_v which_o contention_n there_o be_v extant_a many_o epistle_n among_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n greg._n book_n 5.6.7.10_o at_o length_n under_o phocas_n he_o of_o rome_n obtain_v this_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n begin_v more_o and_o more_o by_o degree_n to_o abuse_v even_o until_o by_o occasion_n first_o by_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n under_o charles_n the_o great_a afterwards_o by_o dissension_n of_o prince_n and_o nation_n whereby_o they_o tear_v and_o rend_v the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o west_n and_o other_o king_n they_o exalt_v themselves_o into_o that_o antichristian_a power_n which_o now_o they_o brag_v of_o have_v oppress_v the_o power_n first_o of_o bishop_n and_o then_o of_o all_o king_n and_o emperor_n thus_o therefore_o have_v satan_n overthrow_v the_o wholesome_a obedience_n and_o government_n of_o the_o clergy_n order_n for_o the_o roman_n antichrist_n get_v to_o himself_o a_o immediate_a rule_n over_o all_o both_o clergy_n and_o laity_n &_o have_v dissolve_v &_o break_v the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o be_v good_a bishop_n over_o those_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o their_o trust_n but_o see_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o all_o order_n of_o clerk_n must_v have_v their_o governor_n &_o overseer_n therefore_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n must_v be_v restore_v as_o also_o of_o archdeacon_n and_o all_o other_o by_o what_o name_n soever_o they_o be_v call_v to_o who_o